f?i^4'i ^^ ^k ^^v ^^B ^^1 ^^B \ -^ .^<^' .v^- r\-^ .V ..^^' "■J- .<^^ G«'0 ■■^o^ ^ '^'t.. '. ,0- 8 1 \ " \ i' -0 ..-Js' . "'b. ^^.^'^^"^/"^ V .:,,....-., - ,v ^..., ,^/>_^*^M0 ,J. V « ,. V -^'^ C 0> .'\'i*/'''^ 'V ■■^^ ,<^^' 'p .'"^ o> ci- /■ \^ #->. ,0o V- ,-Jv- n^ ^, •x^ > .V ^' <^ .'^^ . .Oo, ->. ,^' •^ V 0' ■ /?^s^' aO"" .A' y<. K.^ ^0 o. ^'. ^. ,-0- n" ...'-> -^^ ,# ■^^^\ \^ •x^^' 'V .^^■^ ■c^ aN 0' <■'■''*
'^^.
x^^^.
^^.
o> -O^
^^
o^
A
o ''
cP'
oA -r^.
N^^ "t
Oo^
X^^x
*^' -^^
^ * '. s • 4^
'^. .V, «:
.^♦^ c«^"., \ "'^ .0> ,^-^'
AS
V^^" "''c^.
,0o
-Jy'
o
."^
X
.x-^
,0-
0^
^o.
.0^
,v
•\
^ ^ ^ ■ '^: '^o^ :/"■"■ - ■
,0 o^
"'-/- * 8 I "i '
x^^' '^^-
%,^
^ V I
<^ ■' , X * .'A
.s^ %,
<.
.^v ,"-'-« '^'^/^'-'^ .o":<-^'«* . ^^.
HISTORICAL MEMORIALS OF CANTERBURY
Canterbury Cathedral.
HISTORICAL MEMORIALS
CANTERBURY
The Landing of Augustine
The Murder of Becket Edward the Black Piince
Beckefs Shrine
BY
ARTHUR PENRHYN STANLEY, D.D.
It
ILatc Dfan of EHcstminsfcr
FORMERLY CANON OF CANTERBURY
SECOND AMERICAN FROM THE ELEVENTH LONDON
EDITION
?32Eitf) Hlustrations
NEW YORK
ANSON D. F. RANDOLPH & COMPANY
(incorporated)
182 Fifth Aven u e
<'^ O^
John Wilson and Son, Cambridge.
" BECUCST
*^° REV. iJULfUS W. ATWODO
JUNE S, 194S
TO THE VENERABLE
BENJAMIN HARRISON,
ARCHDEACON" OF MAIDSTONE AND CANON OF CANTERBURY,
IN GRATEFUL REMEMBRANCE OF MUCH KINDNESS,
THESE SLIGHT MEMORIALS OF THE CITY AND CATHEDRAL
WHICH HE HAS SO FAITHFULLY SERVED
ARE INSCRIBED WITH SINCERE RESPECT
BY THE AUTHOR.
CONTENTS.
I. — LANDING OF AUGUSTINE AND CONVERSION OF
ETIIELBERT.
Tlie five landings, 21 ; Gregory the Great, 23-27 ; Dialugue witli the
Anglo-Saxon slaves, 28, 29 ; Mission of Augustine, 30, 31 ; Land-
ing at Ebbe's Fleet, 32-34.
Ethelbert and Bertha, 34 ; St. Martin's Church, 35 ; Interview of
Ethelbert and Augustine, 36-39 ; Arrival of Augustine at Canter-
bury, 39, 40; Stable-gate, 41; Baptism of Ethelbert and of the
Kentish people, 41, 42 ; Worship in tlie Church of St. Pancras, 43 ;
First endowment in the grant of the Cathedral of Canterbury, 45 ;
Monastery, library, and burial-ground of St. Augustine's Abbey,
47 ; Foundation of the Sees of Rochester and London, 49 ; Death
of Augustine, 50 ; Reculver, 52 ; Death of Ethelbert, 52.
Effects of Augustine's mission : Primacy of Canterbury, 53, 54 ; Ex-
tent of English diocei^es, 55 ; Toleration of Christian diversities,
56 ; Toleration of heathen customs, 57-59 ; Great results from
small beginnings, 59-62.
II. — MURDER OF BECKET.
Variety of judgments on the event, 67, 68 ; Sources of information,
69, 70.
Return of Becket from France : Controversy with the Archbishop of
York on the rights of coronation, 71-73 ; Parting with the Abl>ot
of St. Albans at Harrow, 74 ; Insults from the Brocs of Saltwood,
75 ; Scene in the cathedral on Christmas Day, 76, 77.
Fury of the king, 79 ; The four kniglits, 80 ; Their arrival at Salt-
wood, 83 ; at St. Augustine's Abbey, 83 ; The fatal Tuesday, 84,
85 ; The entrance of the knights into the palace, 86.
Appearance of Becket, 87 ; Interview with the knights, 88-94 ; Their
assault on the palace, 95.
X CONTENTS.
Retreat of Becket to the cathedral, 95 ; Miracle of the lock, 96 ; Scene
in the cathedral, 97, 98 ; Entrance of the knights, 99 ; The transept
of "The Martyrdom," 101, 102.
Meeting of the knij^hts and the Archbishop, 103 ; Struggle, 104, 105 ;
The murder, 106-109; Plunder of the palace, 110; The storm,
110.
The dead body. 111 ; The watching in the choir, 112 ; The discovery
of the haircloth, 112, 113; The aurora borealis, 114.
The morning, 115; Unwrajjping of the corpse and discovery of the
vermin, 115, 116; Burial in the crypt, 117; Desecration and re-
consecration of the cathedral, 118 ; Canonization, 119.
Escape of the murderers, 120; Turning-table at South Mailing, 121;
Legend of their deaths, 121-123 ; Their real history, 124 ; More-
ville, Fitzurse, Bret, Eitzrauulph, 125,126; Tracy, 126-131; Pic-
torial representations of the murder, 131-133.
The king's remorse, 133-135 ; Penance at Argenton, Gorham, and
Avranches, 136, 137 ; Hide from Southampton, 139 ; Entrance into
Canterbury, 140; Penance in the crypt, 140, 141 ; Absolution, 142;
Conclusion, 144-146.
III. — EDWAHD THE BLACK PRINCE.
Historical lessons of Canterbury Cathedral, 150; The tombs, 151,
Birth of the Black Prince, 152; Union of hereditary qualities, 153;
Education at Queen's College, Oxford, 1.53, 154; Wycliffe, 155.
Battle of Cressy, 155-159; Name of "Black Prince," 159; Battle of
Poitiers, 160-163.
Visit to Canterbury, 164 ; " Black Prince's Well " at Harldedown, 164 ;
" King John's Pri.son," 164.
Marriage — chantry in the crypt, 165 ; "Fawkes' Hall," 166 ; Spanish
campaign, 166 ; Return — sickness, 167 ; Appearance in Parliament,
167; Death-bed, 168, 169; Exorcism by the Bishop of Bangor,
170; Death, 171.
Mourning, 171, 172; Funeral, 173, 174; Tomb, 17.5-179; Effects of
the Prince's life: (1) English and French wars, 181 ; (2) Chivalry
— sack of Limoges, 182, 183 ; (3) First great English captain, and
first English gentleman, 184-186.
Appendix.
1. Okdinance for the two Chantries founded by the Black
Prince in the Undercroft of Christ Church, Canterbury,
187.
2. The Will of the Black Prince, 194.
Notes by Mr. Albert Wav, 203.
CONTENTS. xi
IV. — THE SHRINE OF BECKET.
Comparative insignificance of Canterbury Cathedral before the murder
of Becket, 220.
Kelative position of Christ Church and St. Augustine's, 221-223 ;
Change effected by Archbishop Cuthbert, 224.
Effect of tlie " Martyrdom," 226 ; Spread of the worship of Saint
Thomas in Italy, France, Syria, 227 ; in Scotland and England,
228, 229; in London, 230.
Altar of the Sword's Point, 231 ; Tluiider by Roger and Benedict, 232,
The tomb in the crypt, 233 ; Henry II., Louis VII., Richard I., John,
233, 234.
Erection of the Shrine, 234 ; Tiie fire of 1174, 234 : AVilliam of Sens
and William tlie Englishman, 235 ; iMilargement of the eastern
end, 238; The Watching Chamber, 238.
The translation of the relics in 1220, 239; Henry III., Langton, 239,
240.
Pilgrimages, 243 ; Approach from Sandwich, 243 ; Approach from
Southampton, 244 ; The " Pilgrims' lioad," 244 ; Approach from
London, 245 ; Chaucer's Canterbury Tales, 245-250.
Entrance into Canterbury, 251. 252; Jubilees, 253; The inns, 255;
The Chequers, 256 ; The convents, 257.
Entrance into tlie cathedral, 258.
The nave, 259 ; The " Martyrdom," 260 ; The crypt, 261 ; The steps,
263; The crown, 265; The Shrine, 265-269, The Regale of
France, 270.
The well and the pilgrims' signs, 272-274 ; The dinner, 275 ; The
town, 275 ; The return. 276.
Greater pilgrims, 276 ; Edward I., 276 ; Isal)ella, 276 ; John of France,
277.
Reaction against pilgrimage, 278 ; The Lollards, 278 ; Simon of Sud-
bury, 279 ; Erasmus and Colet, 280-283 ; Scene at llarbledown,
284.
Visit of Henry VIII. and Charles V., 286.
The Reformation, 287 ; Abolition of the festival, 287 ; Cranmer's
banquet, 288 ; Trial of Becket, 289-292 ; Visit of Madame de Mon-
treuii, 293 ; Destruction of the Shrine, 294 ; Proclamation,
295.
Conclusion, 301.
Xote A. — Extracts from the " Polistoire " of Canterbury Cathedral,
305.
Note B. — Extracts from the '' Travels of the Bohemian Embassy " in
1465, 309.
ILLUSTRATIONS IN TEXT.
PAGE
Map of the Isle of Thanet at the Time of the Land-
ing OF Saint Augustine G4
Plan of the Cathedral at the Time op the Murdek
OF Becket 96
The Crypt 141
The Tomb of the Black Prince 175
Relics of the Black Prince suspended over the Tomb . . . 178
Enamelled Escutcheons on the Tomb of the Black Prince 207-208
Representation of the Black Prince, illustrating the Canopy over
the Tomb 213
Canopy of the Black Prince's Tomb 180
Becket's Shrine 2G7
Representation of Becket's Shrine in a Painted
Window 355
The Moiuim:nt of Archbishop Tdit.
INTRODUCTION.
''T^HE following pages, written in intervals of leisure
J- taken from subjects of greater importance, have
nothing to recommend them, except such instruction
as may arise from an endeavor to connect topics of
local interest with the general course of history. It
appeared to me, on the one hand, that some additional
details might be contributed to some of the most re-
markable events in English history, by an almost ne-
cessary familiarity with the scenes on which those
events took place ; and, on the other hand, it seemed
possible that a comparative stranger, fresh from other
places and pursuits, might throw some new light on
local antiquities, even when they have been as well
explored as those of Canterbury.
To these points I have endeavored, as nearly as
possible, to limit myself. Each of the four subjects
which are here treated opens into much wider fields
than can be entered upon, unless as parts of the
general history of England. Each, also, if followed
out in all its details, would require a more minute
research than I am able to afford. But in each, I
trust, something will be found which may not be alto-
gether useless either to the antiquary or to the his-
torian, who may wish to examine these events fully
under their several aspects.
xvi INTKODUCTION.
Other similar subjects, if time and opportunity should
be granted, may perhaps be added at some future pe-
riod. But the four here selected are the most im-
portant in themselves, as well as the most closely
connected with the history of Canterbury Cathedral.
I have accordingly placed them together, apart from
other topics of kindred but subordinate interest.
The first Essay is the substance of a lecture delivered
at Canterbury in 1854, and thus partakes of a more
popular character than so grave a subject as the con-
version of England would naturally require. Eor the
reasons above stated, I have abstained from entering
on the more general questions which the event sug-
gests, — the character of Gregory the Great ; the rela-
tion of the Anglo-Saxon to the British Church ; and
the spread of Anglo-Saxon Christianity. My purpose
was simply to exhibit in full detail the earliest tradi-
tions of England and Canterbury respecting the mis-
sion of Augustine, and the successive steps by which
that mission was established in Kent. And I have
endeavored by means of these details to illustrate the
remote position which Britain then occupied in relation
to the rest of the civilized world, and the traces which
were left in the country by the Eoman civilization,
then for the first time planted among our rude Saxon
forefathers.
The second Essay, which originally appeared in the
" Quarterly Review," September, 1853, has been since
considerably enlarged by additional information, con-
tributed chiefly through the kindness of friends. Here,
again, the general merits of the controversy between
Henry II. and Becket have been avoided; and my
object was then simply to give the facts of its closing
scene. For this, my residence at Canterbury provided
INTRODUCTION. xvii
special advantages. The narrative accordingly pur-
poses to embrace every detail which can throw any
light on the chief event connected with the history of
the cathedral. In order to simplify the number of
references, I have sometimes contented myself with
giving one or two out of the many authorities, wlien
these were sufficient to guarantee the facts. Of the
substantial correctness of the whole story, the remark-
able coincidences between the several narratives, and
again between the narratives and the actual localities,
appear to me decisive proofs.
The third Essay was delivered as a lecture at Can-
terbury, m July, 1852. Although, in point of time,
it preceded the others, and was in part intended as
an introduction to any future addresses or essays of
a similar kind, I have removed it to a later place for
the sake of harmonizing it with the chronological order
of the volume. The lecture stands nearly as it was
delivered; nor have I altered some allusions to our
own time, which later events have rendered, strictly
speaking, inapplicable, though perhaps, in another
point of view, more intelligible than when first writ-
ten. Poitiers is not less interesting when seen in the
light of Inkermann, and the French and English wars
receive a fresh and happy illustration from the French
and English alliance. There is, of course, little new
that can be said of the Black Prince ; and my chief
concern was with the incidents which form his con-
nection with Canterbury. But in the case of so
remarkable a monument as his tomb and effigy in the
cathedral, a general sketch of the man was almost
unavoidable. The account of his death and funeral
has not, to my knowledge, been put together before.
The fourth Essay is the substance of two lectures
XVlil INTRODUCTION.
delivered at Canterbury in 1855. The story of the
Shrine of Becket was an almost necessary comple-
ment to the story of his murder ; its connection with
Chaucer's poem gives it more than local interest ; and
it brings the history of the cathedral down to the
period of the Eeformation. Some few particulars are
new ; and I have endeavored to represent, in this most
conspicuous instance, the rise, decline, and fall of a
state of belief and practice now extinct in England,
and only seen in modified forms on the Continent.
In the Appendix to the last two lectures will be
found various original documents, most of them now
published for the first time, from the archives of the
Chapter of Canterbury. For this labor, as well as for
much assistance and information in other parts of the
volume, I am indebted to the kindness of my friend
and relative, Mr. Albert Way. He is responsible only
for his own contributions ; but without his able and
ready co-operation I should hardly have ventured on
a publication requiring more antiquarian knowledge
and research than I could bestow upon it ; and the
valuable Notes which he has appended to supply
this defect will, I trust, serve to perpetuate many
pleasant recollections of his pilgrimages to Canterbury
Cathedral.
In publishing a new edition of these Memorials, with
a few slight corrections, I cannot forbear to lament
the loss of the two distinguished archaeologists whose
names so often occur in these pages, — Albert Way and
Professor Willis.
August, 1S75.
THE LANDING OF AUGUSTINE,
AND
CONVERSION OF ETHELBERT.
The authentic materials for the story of the Mission of Augustine
are almost entu-fiy cuinprised in the first and second books of Bede's
'' Ecclesiastical History,'' written in the beginning of tlie eighth cen-
tury. A few ailditioual touches are given by Paul the Deacon and
John the Deacon, in their Lives of Gregory the Great, respectively
at the close of tlie eighth and the close of tiie ninth century ; and in
^Ifric's "Homily ou the Death of Gregory" (a. d. 990-995), trans-
lated by Mrs. Elstob. Some local details may be gained from " Tlie
Chronicles of St. Augustine's Abbey," by Thorn, and " The Life of
Saint Augustine," in the " Acta Sanctorum " of May 26, by Gocelin, —
both monks of St. Augustine's Abbey, one in the fourteenth and the
other in the eleventh century, — but the latter written in so rhetorical
a strain as to be of comparatively little use except for the posthumous
legends.
\.X,A. 4
The Cloisters.
HISTORICAL
MEMORIALS OF CANTERBURY.
THE LANDING OF AUGUSTINE, AND CON-
VERSION OF ETHELBERT.
Lecture deliveked at Canterbury, April 28, 1854.
THERE are five great landings in English history,
each of vast importance, — the landing of Julius
Csesar, which first revealed us to the civilized world,
and the civilized world to us ; the landing of Hengist
and Horsa, which gave us our English forefathers and
our English characters ; the landing of Augustine,
which gave us our Latin Christianity ; the landing of
William the Conqueror, which gave us our Norman
aristocracy ; the landing of William III., which gave
us our free constitution.
Of these five landings, the three first and most im-
portant were formerly all supposed to have taken place
in Kent. It is true that the scene of Cesar's landing
has been removed by the present Astronomer-Royal to
Pevensey ; but there are still strong arguments in favor
of Deal or Hythe. Although the historical character
of Hengist and Horsa has been questioned, yet if they
lauded at all it must have been in Thanet. And at
22 THE FIVE LANDINGS.
any rate, there is no doubt of the close connection of
the landing of Saint Augustine not only with Kent, but
with Canterbury.
It is a great advantage to consider the circumstances
of this memorable event in our local history, because
it takes us immediately into the consideration of events
which are far removed from us both by space and time ;
events, too, of universal interest, which lie at the be-
ginning of the history not only of this country, but of
all the countries of Europe, — the invasion of the North-
ern tribes into the Eomau Empire, and their conversion
to Christianity.
We cannot understand who Augustine was, or why
he came, without understanding something of the whole
state of Europe at that time. It was, we must remem-
ber, hardly more than a hundred years since the Eoman
Empire had been destroyed, and every country was like
a seething caldron, just settling itself after the invasion
of the wild barbarians who had burst in upon the civ-
ilized world, and trampled down the proud fabric which
-had so long sheltered the arts of peace and the security
of law. One of these countries was our own. The
fierce Saxon tribes, by whomsoever led, were to the
Romans in Britain what the Goths had been in Italy,
what the Vandals had been in Africa, what the Franks
had been in France ; and under them England had
again become a savage nation, cut off from the rest of
the world, almost as much as it had been before the
landing of Julius Ciesar. In this great convulsion it
w^as natural that the civilization and religion of the
old world should keep the firmest hold on the country
and the city which had so long been its chief seat.
That country, as we all know, was Italy, and that
city was Eome. And it is to Eome that we must
GREGORY THE GREAT. 23
now transport ourselves, if we wish to know liow and
from whence it was that Augustine came, — by what
means, under God, our fathers received the light of
the Gospel.
In the general crash of all the civil institutions of
the Empire, when the last of the Csesars had been
put down, when the Eoman armies were no longer
able to maintain their hold on the world, it was natu-
ral that the Christian clergy of Eome, with the Bishop
at their head, should have been invested with a new and
unusual importance. They retained the only sparks of
religious or of civilized life which the wild German
tribes had not destroyed, and they accordingly remained
still erect amidst the ruins of almost all besides.
It is to one of these clergy, to one of these Bishops
of Eome, that we have now to be introduced ; and if,
in the story we are about to hear, it shall appear that
we derived the greatest of all the blessings we now
enjoy from one who filled the office of Pope of Eome,
it will not be without its advantage, for two good rea-
sons : First, because, according to the old proverb, every
one, even the Pope, must have his due, — and it is as
ungenerous to deny him the gratitude which he really
deserves, as it is unwise to give him the honor to which
he has no claim ; and, secondly, because it is useful to
see how different were all the circumstances which
formed our relations to him then and now, — how,
although bearing the same name, yet in reality the
position of the man and the office, his duties towards
Christendom, and the duties of Christendom towards
him, were as different from what they are now, as
almost any two things are one from the other.
It is, then, on Gregory the Great that we are to fix
our attention. At the time we are first to meet him.
24 GREGORY TPIE GREAT.
he was not yet Pope. He was still a monk in the
great monastery of St. Andrew, which he had himself
founded, and which still exists, on the Caslian Mount
at Eome, standing conspicuous amongst the Seven
Hills, — marked by its crown of pines, — rising imme-
diately behind the vast walls of the Colosseum, which
we may still see, and which Gregory must have seen
every day that he looked from his convent windows.
This is not the place to discuss at length the good
and evil of his extraordinary character, or the position
which he occupied in European history, almost as the
founder of Western Christendom. I will now only
touch on those points which are necessary to make us
understand what he did for us and our fathers. He
was remarkable amongst his contemporaries for his
benevolence and tenderness of heart. Many proofs
of it are given in the stories which are told about
him. The long marble table is still shown at Rome
where he used to feed twelve beggars every day.
There is a legend that on one occasion a thirteenth
appeared among them, an unbidden guest, — an angel,
whom he had thus entertained unawares. There is
also a true story, which tells the same lesson, — that
he was so much grieved on hearing of the death of a
poor man, who in some great scarcity in Eome had
been starved to death, that he inflicted on himself the
severest punishment, as if ho had been responsible for
it. He also showed his active charity in one of those
seasons which give opportunity to all faithful pastors
and all good men for showing what they are really
made of, during one of the great pestilences which rav-
aged Piome immediately before his elevation to the pon-
tificate. All travellers who have been at Rome will
remember the famous legend, describing how, as he
GREGORY THE GREAT. 25
approached at the head of a procession, chanting the Lit-
any, to the great mausoleum of the Emperor Hadrian,
he saw in a vision the Destroying Angel on the top of
the tower sheatliing his sword ; and from this vision,
the tower, when it afterwards was turned into the
Papal fortress, derived the name of the Castle of St.
Angelo. Nor was his charity confined to this world.
His heart yearned towards those old pagan heroes or
sages who had been gathered to their fathers w^ithout
hearing of the name of Christ. He could not bear to
think, with the belief tliat prevailed at that time, that
they had been consigned to destruction. One especially
there was, of whom he was constantly reminded in
his walks through Eome, — the great Emperor Trajan,
whose statue he always saw rising above him at the
top of the tall column which stood in the market-
place, called from him the Forum of Trajan. It is
said that he Vv^as so impressed with the thought of
the justice and goodness of this heathen sovereign, that
he earnestly prayed, in St. Peter's Church, that God
would even now give him grace to know the name of
Christ and be converted. And it is believed that from
the veneration which he entertained for Trajan's mem-
ory, this column remained when all around it was shat-
tered to pieces ; and so it still remains, a monument
both of the goodness of Trajan and the true Christian
charity of Gregory. Lastly, like many, perhaps like
most remarkable men, he took a deep interest in chil-
dren. He instructed the choristers of his convent
himself in those famous chants which bear his name.
The book from which he taught them, the couch on
which he reclined during the lesson, even the rod with
which he kept the boys in order, were long preserved
at Ptome; and in memory of this part of his life a
26 GREGORY THE GREAT.
children's festival was held on his day as late as the
seventeenth century. ^
I may seem to have detained you a long time in
describing these general features of Gregory's charac-
ter. But they are necessary to illustrate the well-
known story 2 which follows, and which was preserved,
not, as it would seem, at Eome, but amongst the grate-
ful descendants of those who owed their conversion to
the incident recorded. There was one evil of the time,
from which we are now happily free, which especially
touched his generous heart, — the vast slave-trade which
then went on through all parts of Europe. It was not
only, as it once was in the British Empire, from the
remote wilds of Africa that children were carried off
and sold as slaves, but from every country in Europe.
The wicked traffic was chiefly carried on by Jews and
Samaritans;^ and it afterwards was one especial object
of Gregory's legislation to check so vast an evil. He
was, in fact, to that age what Wilberforce and Clark-
1 Lappeuberg's History of England (Eng. tr.), i. 130.
2 The story is told in Bede, ii. 1, § 89, and from him is copied, with
very slight variations, by all other ancient medieval writers. It has
been told by most modern historians, but in no instance that I have
seen, with perfect accuracy, or with the full force of all the expressions
employed. As Bede speaks of knowing it by tradition ("traditione
majorum "), he may, as a Northumbrian, have lieard it from the families
of the North uml)riau slaves. But most probably it was preserved
in St. Augustine's monastery at Canterbury, and communicated to
Bede, with other traditions of the Kentish Church, by Albinus, Abbot
of St. Augustine's (Bede, Pref. p. 2). As the earliest of " Canterbury
Tales," it seemed worthy of being here repeated with all the illustra-
tions it could receive. There is nothing in the story intrinsically im-
probable ; and altliough Gregory may have been actuated by many
motives of a more general character, such as are ably imagined by Mr.
Kemble, iu the interesting chapter on this subject in his " Saxons in
England," yet perhaps we learn as much by considering in detail what
in England at least was believed to be the origin of the mission.
3 See Milman's History of the Jews, iii. 208.
587.] GREGORY THE GREAT. 27
son, by their noble Christian zeal, have been to ours.
And it may be mentioned, as a proof both of his en-
lightened goodness, and of his interest in this particu-
lar cause, that he even allowed and urged the sale of
sacred vessels, and of the property of the Church, for
the purpose of redeeming captives. AVith this feeling
in his mind he one day went with the usual crowd that
thronged to the market-place at Eome when they heard,
as they did on this occasion, that new cargoes of mer-
chandise had been imported from foreign parts. It was
possibly in that very market-place of which I have
before spoken, where the statue of his favorite Trajan
was looking down upon him from the summit of his
lofty pillar. To and fro, before him, amongst the bales
of merchandise, passed the gangs of slaves, torn from
their several homes to be sold amongst the great fami-
lies of the nobles and gentry of Italy, — a sight such
as may still be seen (happily nowhere else) in the re-
mote East, or in the Southern States of North America.
These gangs were doubtless from various parts : tliere
were the swarthy hues of Africa ; there were the dark-
haired and dark-eyed inhabitants of Greece and Sicily ;
there were the tawny natives of Syria and Egypt. But
amongst these, one group arrested the attention of Greg-
ory beyond all others. It was a group of three ^ boys,
distinguished from the rest by their fair complexion
and white ilesh, the beautiful expression of their coun-
tenances, and their light flaxen hair, which, by the side
of the dark captives of the South, seemed to him al-
most of dazzling brightness,^ and which, by its long
curls, showed that they were of noble origin.
1 Thorn, 1737. " Tres pueros." He alone gives the number.
2 " Candidi corporis," Bede ; " lactei corporis," Paul the Dea-
con, c. 17; " venusti vuitu-s, capillorum nitore," John the Deacon;
28 DIALOGUE WITH ANGLO-SAXON SLAVES. [587.
Nothing gives us a stronger notion of the total sep-
aration of the northern and southern races of Europe
at that time than the emotion which these peculiarities,
to us so familiar, excited. Gregory stood and looked at
them ; his fondness for children of itself would have
led him to pity them ; that they should be sold for
slaves struck (as we have seen) on another tender chord
in his heart ; and he asked from what part of the world
they had been brought The slave merchant, probably
a Jew, answered, " From Britain ; and there all the in-
habitants have this bright complexion." ^
It would almost seem as if this was the first time
that Gregory had ever heard of Britain. It was indeed
to Eome nearly what New Zealand is now to England ;
and one can imagine that fifty years ago, even here, there
may have been many, even of the educated classes, who
had a very dim conception of where New Zealand was,
or what were its inhabitants. The first question which
he asked about this strange country was what we might
have expected. The same deep feeling of compassion
that he had already shown for the fate of the good
Trajan, now made him anxious to know whether these
beautiful children — so innocent, so interesting — were
pagans or Christians. " They are pagans," was the
reply. The good Gregory heaved a deep sigh '^ from the
bottom of his heart, and broke out into a loud lamen-
tation expressed with a mixture of playfulness, which
" crine riitila," Gocelin ; " capillos prfficipui candoris," Paulus Diac. ;
" capillum forma egrep:ia," Bede ; " noble [cethe/ice'] heads of hair,"
iELFKic. It is from these last expressions that it may be inferred that
the hair was unshorn, and therefore indicated that the children were
of noble birth. See Palijrave's Historj^ of the Anglo-Saxons, p. 58 ;
Lappenberg's History of England, i. 136.
1 " De Britannias insula, cujus incolarum omuis facies simili can-
dore fulgescit." — Acta Sanctorum, p. 141 ; John the Deacon, i. 21.
2 " Intimo ex corde longa traheus suspiria." — Bede.
587.] DIALOGUE WITH ANGLO-SAXON SLAVES. 29
partly was in accordance with tlie custom of the time,^
partly perhaps was suggested by the tliought that it
was children of whom he was speaking. "Alas! more
is the pity, that faces so full of light and brightness
should be in the hands of the Prince of Darkness, that
such grace of outward appearance should accompany
minds without the grace of God within ! " ^ He went
on to ask what was the name of their nation, and was
told that they were called "Angles " or " English." It
is not without a thrill of interest that we hear the
proud name which now is heard with respect and awe
from the rising to the setting sun, thus uttered for the
first time in the metropolis of the world, — thus awak-
ing for the first time a response in a Christian heart.
" Well said," replied Gregory, still following out his
play on the words ; " rightly are they called Angles, for
they have the face of angels, and they ought to be fel-
low-heirs of angels in heaven." Once more he asked,
" What is the name of the province from which they
w^ere brought?" He was told that they were "Deirans,"
that is to say, that they were from Deira ^ (the land of
" wild beasts," or " wild deer "), the name then given to
the tract of country between the Tyne and the Humber,
including Durham and Yorkshire. " Well said, again,"
answered Gregory, with a play on the word that can
only be seen in Latin; " rightly are they called Deirans,
plucked as they are from God's ire [dc ird Dci\, and
called to the mercy of Christ." Once again he asked,
" And who is the king of that province ? " " Ella," was
1 The anonymous biographer of Gregory, in the "Acta Sanctorum,"
March 12, p. 130, rejoices in the Pope's own name of good omen, —
" Gregorius," quasi " Vigilantius."
2 " Tarn lucidi vultus . . . auctor teuehrarum . . . gratia frontis
. . . gratia Dei," Bede ; "Black Devil," iELFRic
3 "Deore; Thier; deer." See Soames' Anglo-Saxon Church, p. 31.
30 MISSION OF AUGUSTIXE. [587.
the reply. Every one who has ever heard of Gregory
has heard of his Gregorian chants, and of his interest
in sacred music ; the name of Ella reminded him of
the Hebrew words of praise which he had introduced
into the Eoman service,^ and he answered, " AUelujah !
the praise of God their Creator shall be sung in those
parts."
So ended this dialogue, — doubly interesting because
its very strangeness shows us the character of the man
and the character of his age. This mixture of the play-
ful and the serious — this curious distortion of words
from their original meaning ^ — was to him and his
times the natural mode of expressing their own feelings
and of instructing others. But it was no passing emo-
tion which the sight of the three Yorkshire boys had
awakened in the mind of Gregory. He went from the
market-place to the Pope, and obtained from him at
once permission to go and fulfil the design of his heart,
and convert the English nation to the Christian faith.
He was so much beloved in Eome, that great opposi-
tion it was felt would be made to his going ; and
therefore he started from his convent with a small band
of his companions in the strictest secrecy. But it was
one of the many cases that we see in human life, where
even the best men are prevented from accomplishing
the olijects they have most at heart. He had advanced
three days along the great northern road, which leads
through the Flaminian gate from Eome to the Alps.
When ^ they halted as usual to rest at noon, they
were lying down in a meadow, and Gregory was read-
1 See Fleury, Histoire Ecclesiastique, book xxxvi. 18.
2 See the account of Grefjory's own Commentary on Job, as shortly
given in Milman's History of Latin Christianity, i. 435.
^ " Vit. S. Grec;." — Paul the Deacon.
587.] MISSION OF AUGUSTINE. 31
ing ; suddenly a locust leaped upon his book, and sat
motionless on the page. In the same spirit that had
dictated his playful speeches to the three children, he
began to draw morals from the name and act of the
locust. " Eightly is it called Locusta," he said, "be-
cause it seems to say to us ' Loco sta,' that is, ' Stay
in your place.' I see that we shall not be able to finish
our journey. But rise, load the mules, and let us get
on as far as we can." It was whilst they were in the
act of discussing this incident that there galloped to
the spot messengers, on jaded horses, bathed in sweat,
who had ridden after him at full speed from the Pope,
to command his instant return. A furious mob had at-
tacked the Pope in St. Peter's Church, and demanded
the instant recall of Gregory. To Rome he returned ;
and it is this interruption, humanly speaking, which
prevented us from having Gregory the Great for the first
Archbishop of Canterbury and founder of the English
Church.
Years rolled away ^ from the time of the conversation
in the market-place before Gregory could do anything
for the fulfilment of his wishes. But he never forgot
it; and when he was at last elected Pope he employed
an agent in France to buy English Christian youths of
seventeen or eighteen years of age, sold as slaves, to be
brought up in monasteries. But before this plan had
led to any result, he received intelligence which deter-
mined him to adopt a more direct course. What this
intelligence was we shall see as we proceed. [o97.]
Whatever it might be, he turned once more to his old
convent on the Cffilian Hill, and from its walls sent
forth the Prior, Augustine, with forty monks as mis-
1 The mention of " Ella " in the dialogue fixes the date to be before
A. D. 588. Au2;ustine was sent a. d. 597.
32 LANDING AT EBBE'S FLEET. [597.
sionaries to England. In one of the chapels of that
convent there is still a picture of their departure.
I will not detain you with his journey through
France ; it is chiefly curious as showing how very re-
mote England seemed to be.^ He and his companions
•were so terrified by the rumors they heard, that they
sent him back to Kome to beg that they might be ex-
cused. Gregory would hear of no retreat from dangers
which he had himself been prepared to face. At last
they came on, and landed at Ebbe's Fleet,^ in the Isle
of Thanet.
Let us look for a moment on the scene of this im-
portant event, as it now is and as it was then. You
all remember the high ground where the white chalk
cliffs of Ramsgate suddenly end in Pegwell Bay. Look
from that high ground over the level flat which lies be-
tween these cliffs and the point where they begin again
in St. Margaret's cliffs beyond Walmer. Even as it is,
you see why it must always have invited a landing
from the continent of Europe. The wide opening be-
tween the two steep cliffs must always have afforded
the easiest approach to any invaders or any settlers.
But it was still more so at the time of which we are
now speaking. The level ground which stretches be-
tween the two cliffs was then in great part covered with
water ; the sea spread much farther inland from Peg-
well Bay, and the Stour, or Weusome^ (as that part
1 Greg. Epp., v. 10.
2 It is called variously Hypwine, Epwine, Hlped, Hepe, Epped,
Wipped Fleet ; aud the name has been variously derived from
Whipped (a Saxon chief, killed in the first battle of Hengist), Hope
(a haven), JWe< (from its being afterwards the port of the abbey of
St. Augustine). Fleet is "Port."
3 The " Boarded Groin " which Lewis (Isle of Thanet, p. 83) fixes
as the spot, still remains, a little beyond the coast-guard station, at
the point marked in the Ordnance Survey as the lauding place of the
597.] LANDING AT EBBE'S FLEET. 33
was then called), instead of being a scanty stream that
hardly makes any division between the meadows on
one side and the other, was then a broad river, making
the Isle of Thanet really an island, nearly as much as
the Isle of Sheppey is now, and stretching at its mouth
into a wide estuary, which formed the port of Eich-
borough. Moreover, at that remote age, Sandwich ha-
ven was not yet choked up ; so that all the ships which
came from France and Germany, on their way to Lon-
don, sailed up into this large port, and through the
river, out at the other side by Eeculver, or, if they
were going to land in Kent, at Richborough on the
mainland, or at Ebbe's Fleet in the Isle of Thanet.
Ebbe's Fleet is still the name of a farm-house on a
strip of high ground rising out of Minster marsh,
which can be distinguished from a distance by its line
of trees ; and on a near approach you see at a glance
that it must once have been a headland or promontory
running out into the sea between the two inlets of the
estuary of the Stour on one side, and Pegwell Bay on
the other. What are now the broad green fields were
then the waters of the sea. The tradition that " some
landing" took place there, is still preserved at the
farm, and the field of clover which rises immediately
on its north side is shown as the spot.
Here it was that, according to the story preserved in
the Saxon Chronicle, Hengist and Horsa had sailed in
with their three ships and the band of warriors who
conquered Vortigern. And here now Augustine came
with his monks, his choristers, and the interpreters
Saxons. " Cotmansfield " seems to be the high ground running at the
back of level ; the only vestige of the name now preserved is "Cotting-
ton." But no tradition marks the spot, and it must then have been
covered by the sea.
8
34 ETHELBERT AND BERTHA. [597.
they had brought with them from France. The Saxon
conquerors, hke Augustine, are described as having
landed, not at Eichborough, but at Ebbe's Fleet, be-
cause they were to have the Isle of Thanet, for their
first possession, apart from the mainland ; and Au-
gustine landed there that he might remain safe on that
side the broad river till he knew the mind of the king.
The rock was long preserved on which he set foot, and
which, according to a superstition found in almost
every country, was supposed to have received the im-
pression of his footmark. In later times it became an
object of pilgrimage, and a little chapel was built over
it; though it was afterwards called the footmark of
Saint Mildred, and the rock, even till the beginning of
the last century, was called " Saint Mildred's rock," ^
from the later saint of that name, whose fame in the
Isle of Thanet then eclipsed that of Augustine him-
self. There they landed " in the ends," " in the corner
of the world," ^ as it was then thought, and waited
secure in their island retreat till they heard how the an-
nouncement of their arrival was received by Ethelbert, .
King of Kent.
To Ethelbert we must now turn.-'^ He was, it was
believed, great-grandson of Eric, son of Hengist, sur-
1 "Not many years ago," says Hasted (iv. 325), writing in 1799.
" A few years ago," says Lewis (Isle of Thanet, p. 58), writing in 1723.
Compare, for a similar transfei-ence of names in more sacred localities,
the footmark of Mahomet in the Mosque of Omar, called during the
Crusades the footmark of Christ ; and the footmark of Mahomet's
mule on Sinai, now called the footmark of the dromedary of Moses.
The stone Avas thought to be gifted with the power of flying back to
its original place if ever removed. (Lambard's Kent, p. 104.)
2 " Fines mundi — gens Anglorum in mundi angulo posita." — Greg.
Epp., V. 158, 159. Observe the play on the word, as in page 29.
^ Ethelbert is the same name as Adalbert and Albert /as Adalfuns
= Alfous, Uodelrich = Ulrich), meaning "Noble-bright."
597.] ST. MARTIN'S CHURCH. 35
named " the Ash," ^ and father of the dynasty of the
"Ashmgs;' or "sons of the Ash-tree," the name by
which the kings of Kent were known. He had, be-
sides, acquired a kind of imperial authority over the
other Saxon kings as far as the Humber. To con-
solidate his power, he had married Bertha, a French
princess, daughter of the King of Paris. It was on
this marriage that all the subsequent fate of England
turned. Ethelbert was, like all the Saxons, a heathen ;
but Bertha, like all the rest of the French royal family
from Clovis downwards, was a Christian. She had her
Christian chaplain with her, Luidhard, a French Ijisliop ;
and a little chapel ^ outside the town, which had once
been used as a place of British Christian worship, was
given up to her use. That little chapel, " on the east
of the city," as Bede tells us, stood on the gentle slope
now occupied by the venerable Church of St. Martin.
The present church, old as it is, is of far later date ;
but it unquestionably retains in its walls some of the
Roman bricks and Eoman cement of Bertha's chapel ;
and its name may perhaps have been derived from
Bertha's use.^ Of all the great Christian saints of
1 "Ashing" (Bede, ii. 5, § 101) was probably a general name for
hero, in allusion to the primeval man of Teutonic mythology, who was
believed to have sprung from the sacred Ash-tree Ycjdrasil. (Grimm's
Deutsche Myth., i. 324, 531, 617.) Compare the venerable Ash which
gives its name to the village of Donau-Eschiugen, " the Ashes of the
Danube," by the source of that river.
■^ The postern-gate of the Precincts opposite St. Augustine's gate-
way is on the site Queupngate, a name derived — but by a very doubtful
etymology — from the tradition that through it Bertha passed from
Ethelbert's palace to St. Martin's. (Battely s Canterbury, p. 16.)
3 It is, however, possible that the name of Saint Martin may have
been given to the church of the British Christians before. Bede's
expression rather leans to the earlier origin of the name : " Erat . . .
ecclesiain houorem Sancti Martini nntii]uitus facta dum adhuc Romani
Britanniam incolerent." Saint Ninian, who labored amongst the South-
36 INTERVIEW OF ETIIELBERT AND AUGUSTINE. [597.
whom she had heard in France before she came to
England, the most famous was Saint Martin of Tours ;
and thus the name which is now so familiar to us that
we hardly think of asking why the church is so called,
may possibly be a memorial of the recollections which
the French princess still cherished of her own native
country in a land of strangers.
To her it would be no new thought that possibly she
might be the means of converting her husband. Her
own great ancestor, Clovis, had become a Christian
through the influence of his wife Clotilda, and many
other instances had occurred in like manner elsewhere.
It is no new story ; it is the same that has often been
enacted in humbler spheres, — of a careless or unbeliev-
ing husband converted by a believing wife. But it is
a striking sight to see planted in the very beginning of
our history, with the most important consequences to
the whole world, the same fact which every one must
have especially witnessed in the domestic history of
families, high and low, throughout the land.
It is probable that Ethelbert had heard enough from
Bertha to dispose him favorably towards the new re-
ligion ; and Gregory's letters show that it was the
tidings of this predisposition which had induced him
to send Augustine. But Ethelbert's conduct on hear-
ing that the strangers were actually arrived was still
hesitating. He would not suffer them to come to Can-
terbury ; they were to remain in the Isle of Thanet
ern Picts, a.d. 412-432, dedicated his church at "Whitehaven to Saint
Martin. Hasted (History of Kent, iv. 496) states (but without giving any
authority), that it was originally dedicated to the Virgin, and was dedi-
cated to Saint Martin by Luidhard. The legendary origin of tlie church,
as of that in the Castle of Dover, of St. Peter's (Cornhill), of West-
minster Abbey, and of Winchester Cathedral, is traced to King Lucius.
(Ussher, Britannicarum Ecclesiarum Antiquitates, i)p. 129, 130.)
597.] INTERVIEW OF ETHELBERT AND AUGUSTINE. 37
with the Stoiir flowing between himself and them ; and
he also stipulated that on no account should they hold
their first interview under a roof, — it must be in the
open air, for fear of the charms and spells which he
feared they might exercise over him. It was exactly
the savage's notion of religion, that it exercises influ-
ence, not by moral and spiritual, but by magical means.
This was the first feeling ; this it was that caused the
meeting to be held not at Canterbury, but in the Isle
of Thanet, in the wide open space, — possibly at Ebbe's
Fleet, — possibly, according to another account, under
an ancient oak on the high upland ground in the centre
of the island,^ then dotted with woods which have long
since vanished.^
The meeting must have been remarkable. The Sax-
on king, " the Son of the Ash-tree," with his wild sol-
diers round, seated on the bare ground on one side —
on the other side, with a huge silver cross borne before
him (crucifixes were not yet introduced), and beside it
a large picture of Christ painted and gilded^ after the
fashion of those times, on an upright board, came up
from the shore Augustine and his companions, chanting,
as they advanced, a solemn Litany for themselves and
^ See Lewis, Isle of Thanet, p. 83 : " Under an oak that grew in
the middle of the island, which all the German pagans had in the
highest veneration." He gives no authorit}-. The oak was held
sacred by the Germans as well as by the Britons. Probabh- the recol-
lection of this meeting determined the forms of that which Augustine
afterwards held with the British Christians on the confines of Wales.
Then, as now, it was in the open air, under an oak ; then, as now,
Augustine was seated. (Bede, ii 2, § 9.) In the same chapel of St.
Gregory's convent at Rome, which contains the picture of the depart-
ure of Augustine, is one — it need hardly be said, with no attempt at
historical accuracy — of his reception by Ethelbert.
- As indicated by the names of places. (Hasted, iv. 292.)
3 " Formosa atque aurate." — Acta Sanctorum, p. 326.
38 INTERVIEW OF ETHELBERT AND AUGUSTINE. [597.
for those to whom they came. He, as we are told, was
a man of ahiiost gigantic stature,^ head and shoulders
taller than any one else ; with him were Lawrence,
who afterwards succeeded him as Archbishop of Can-
terbury, and Peter, who became first Abbot of St.
Augustine's. They and their companions, amounting
altogether to forty, sat down at the king's command,
and the interview began.
Neither, we must remember, could understand the
other's language. Augustine could not understand a
word of Anglo-Saxon ; and Ethelbert, we may be tol-
erably sure, could not speak a word of Latin. But
the priests whom Augustine had brought from France,
as knowing both German and Latin, now stepped for-
ward as interpreters ; and thus the dialogue which
followed was carried on, much as all communications
are carried on in the East, — Augustine first delivering
his message, which the dragoman, as they would say
in the East, explained to the king^
The king heard it all attentively, and then gave this
most characteristic answer, bearing upon it a stamp of
truth which it is impossible to doubt : " Your words
are fair, and your promises ; but because they are
new and doubtful, I cannot give my assent to them,
and leave the customs which I have so long observed,
with the whole Anglo-Saxon race. But because you
have come hither as strangers from a long distance, and
as I seem to myself to have seen clearly that what you
yourselves believed to be true and good, you wish to
impart to us, we do not wish to molest you ; nay, rather
1 Acta Sanctorum, p. 399.
2 Exchange English travellers for Roman missionaries, Arab sheikhs
for Saxon chiefs, and the well-known interviews on the way to Petra
give us some notion of this celehrated dialogue.
597 ] INTERVIEW OF ETHELBERT AND AUGUSTINE. 39
we are anxious to receive you hospitably, and to give
you all that is needed for your support, nor do we hin-
der you from joining all whom you can to the faith of
your religion."
Such an answer, simple as it was, really seems to
contain the seeds of all that is excellent in the En"-
lish character, — exactly what a king should ha\e said
on such an occasion, — exactly what, under the influ-
ence of Christianity, has grown up into all our best
institutions. There is the natural dislike to change,
which Englishmen still retain ; there is the willingness
at the same time to listen favorably to anything which
comes recommended by the energy and self-devotion
of those who urge it : there is, lastly, the spirit of
moderation and toleration, and the desire to see fair
play, which is one of our best gifts, and which I hope
we shall never lose. We may, indeed, well be thankful,
not only that we had an Augustine to convert us, but
that we had an Ethelbert for our king.
From the Isle of Thanet, the missionaries crossed
the broad ferry to Eichborough, — the " Burgh," or castle,
of " Eete," or " Eetep," as it was then called, from the
old Eoman fortress of Eutupite, of wdiich the vast ruins
still remain. Underneath the overhanging cliff of the
castle, so the tradition ran, the king received the mis-
sionaries.i They then advanced to Canterbury by the
Eoman road over St. Martin's Hill. The first object
1 Sandwich MS. in Boys' Sandwich, p. 838. An okl hermit lived
amongst the ruins in the time of Henry VIII., and pointed out to Le-
laud what seems to have been a memorial of tliis in a chapel of St.
Augustine, of which some slight remains are still to be traced in the
northern bank of the fortress. There was also a head or bust, said to
be of Queen Bertha, embedded in the walls, — remaining till the time
of Elizabeth. Tlie curious crossing in the centre was then called by
the common people, " St. Augustine's Cross." (Camden, p. 342 ) For
this que.stion see the Note at the end of this Lecture.
40 ARRIVAL OF AUGUSTINE AT CANTERBURY. [SOTc
that would catch their view would be the little British
chapel of St. Martin, — a welcome sight, as showing
that the Christian faith was not wholly strange to this
new land. And then, in the valley below, on the banks
of the river, appeared the city, — the rude wooden city
as it then was, — embosomed in thickets. As soon as
they saw it, they formed themselves into a long proces-
sion ; they lifted up again the tall silver cross and the
rude painted board ; there were with them the choris-
ters, whom Augustine had brought from Gregory's
school on the Cailian Hill, trained in the chants which
were called after his name ; and they sang one of
those Litanies ^ which Gregory had introduced for
the plague at Rome. "We beseech thee, Lord, in
all thy mercy, that thy wrath and thine anger may
be removed from this city and from thy holy house.
Allelujah." ^ Doubtless, as tliey uttered that last word,
they must have remembered that they were thus ful-
filling to the letter the very wish that Gregory had
expressed when he first saw the Saxon children in
the market-place at Rome. And thus they came
down St. Martin's Hill, and entered Canterbury.
1 Fleury, Histoire Ecclc'siastique, book xxxv. 1.
- Bede (ii. 1, § 87) supposes that it was to this that Gregory alludes
ill his Commentary on Job, wheu he says, " Lo, the language of Britain,
which once only knew a barbarous jargon, now has begun in divine
praises to sound Allelujah." It is objected to this that the Commen-
tary on Job was written during Gregory's mission to Constantinople,
some years before this event, and that therefore the passage must
relate to the victory gained by Germanus in the Welsh mountains liy
the shout of " Hallelujah." But the Commentary was only begun at
Constantinople. Considering the doubt whether Gregory could have
heard of the proceedings of Germanus, it may well be a (juestion
whether the allusion in tlie Commentary on Job was not added after
he had heard of this fulfilment of liis wishes. At any rate, it illus-
trates the hold which the word " Hallelujah " had on his mind in con-
nection with the conversion of Britain.
597.] BAPTISM OF ETHELBERT. 41
Every one of the events which follow is connected
with some well-known locality. The place that Ethel-
bert gave them first was " Stable-gate," by an old
heathen temple, where his servants worshipped, near
the present Church of St. Alfege, as a " resting-place,"
where they " stabled " till he had made up his mind ;
and by their good and holy lives it is said, as well as
by the miracles they were supposed to work, he was at
last decided to encourage them more openly, and allow
them to worship with the queen at St. Martin's.^
In St. Martin's they worshipped ; and no doubt the
mere splendor and strangeness of the Eoman ritual
produced an instant effect on the rude barbarian mind.
And now came the turning-point of their whole mis-
sion, the baptism of Ethelbert. It was, unless we ex-
cept the conversion of Clovis, the most important
baptism that the world had seen since that of Con-
stantine. We know the day, — it was the Feast of
Whit-Sunday, — on the 2d of June, in the year of our
Lord 597. Unfortunately we do not with certainty
know the place. The only authorities of that early
age tell us merely that he was baptized, without
specifying any particular spot. Still, as St. Martin's
Church is described as the scene of Augustine's min-
istrations, and, amongst other points, of his adminis-
tration of baptism, it is in the highest degree probable
that the local tradition is correct. And although the
venerable font, which is there shown as that in which
he was baptized, is proved by its appearance to be, at
least in its upper part, of a later date, yet it is so like
that which appears in the representation of the event
in the seal of St. Augustine's Abbey, and is in itself
so remarkable, that we may perhaps fairly regard it
1 Thorn, 1758.
42 CHURCH OF ST. PANCRAS. [597.
as a monument of the event, — in the same manner
as the large porphyry basui in the Lateran Church
at Eome commemorates the baptism of Constantine,
though still less corresponding to the reality of that
event than the stone font of St. Martin's to the place
of the immersion of Ethelbert.^
The conversion of a king was then of more im-
portance than it has ever been before or since. The
baptism of any one of these barbarian chiefs almost in-
evitably involved the baptism of the whole tribe, and
therefore we are not to be surprised at finding that
when this step was once achieved, all else was easy.
Accordingly, by the end of that year, Gregory wrote to
his brother patriarch of the distant Church of Alex-
andria (so much interest did the event excite to the re-
motest end of Christendom), that ten thousand Saxons
had been baptized on Christmas Day,^ — baptized, as
we learn from another source, in the broad waters of
the Swale,'"^ at the mouth of the Medway.
The next stage of the mission carries us to another
spot. Midway between St. Martin's and the town was
another ancient building, — also, it would appear, al-
though this is less positively stated, once a British
church, but now used by Ethelbert as a temple in which
1 Neither Bede C§ 79) nor Thorn (1759) says a word of the scene of
the baptism. ButGocelin (Acta Sanctorum, p. 383) speaks distinctly of a
" baptistery " or " urn " as used. The fir.st mention of the font at St.
Martin's that I find is in Stukely, p. 1 17 (in the seventeenth century).
2 Greg. Epp., vii. 30.
3 See Fuller's Church History, ii. §§ 7, 9, where he justly argues,
after his quaint fashion, that the Swale mentioned by Gocelin (Acta
Sanctorum, p. 390), Gervase (Acta Pont., p. 1551 ), and Camden (]). 136).
cannot be that of Yorkshire. Indeed, Gregory's letter is decisive. The
legend represents the crowd as miraculou.sly delivered from drowning,
and the baptism as performed by two and two upon each other at the
command, though not by the act, of Augustine.
597.] CHURCH OF ST. PAXCEAS. 43
to worship the gods of Saxon paganism. Like all the
Saxon temples, we must imagine it embosomed in a
thick grove of oak or ash. This temple, according to
a principle which, as we shall afterwards find, was laid
down by Gregory himself, Ethelbert did not destroy,
but made over to Augustine for a regular place of Chris-
tian worship. Augustine dedicated the place to Saint
Pancras, and it became the Church of St. Pancras, of
which the spot is still indicated by a ruined arch of
ancient brick, and by the fragment of a wall, still show-
ing the mark ^ where, according to the legend, the old
demon who, according to the belief at that time, had
hitherto reigned supreme in the heathen temple, laid
his claws to shake down the building in which he first
heard the celebration of Christian services, and felt that
his rule was over. But there is a more authentic and
instructive interest attaching to that ancient ruin, if
you ask why it was that it received from Augustine the
name of St. Pancras ? Two reasons are given : First,
Saint Pancras, or Pancrasius, was a Roman boy of noble
family, who was martyred "^ under Diocletian at the age
of fourteen, and, being thus regarded as the patron
saint of children, would naturally be chosen as the
patron saint of the first-fruits of the nation which was
converted out of regard to the three English children in
the market-place ; and, secondly, the Monastery of St.
1 The place now pointed out can hardly be the snme as that indi-
cated by Thorn (1760) as " the south wall of the cliurch." But every
student of local tradition knows how easily they are transplanted to
suit the convenience of tlieir jierpetuation. The present mark is aj)-
parently that mentioned by Stukely (p. 117), who gives a view of the
church as then standing.
2 The Roman Church of St. Pancrazio, behind the Vatican (so fa-
mous in the siege of Rome by the French iu 1849), is on the scene of
Pancrasius 's martyrdom.
44 riKST CATHEDEAL OF CANTERBURY. [597.
Andrew on the Caelian Hill, which Gregory had founded,
and from which Augustine came, was built on the very
property which had belonged to the family of Saint
Pancras, and therefore the name of Saint Pancras was
often in Gregory's mouth (one of his sermons was
preaclied on Saint Pancras's day), and would thus nat-
urally occur to Augustine also. That rising ground
on which the Chapel of St. Pancras stands, with St.
]\Iartin's Hill behind, was to him a Cielian ]\Iount in
England ; and this, of itself, would suggest to him the
wisli, as we shall presently see, to found his first
monastery as nearly as possible with the same asso-
ciations as that which he had left behind.
But Ethelbert was not satisfied with establishing
those places of worship outside the city. Augustine
was now formally consecrated as the first Archbishop
of Canterbury, and Ethelbert determined to give him a
dwelling-place and a house of prayer within the city
also. Buildings of this kind were rare in Canterbury,
and so the king retired to Pieculver, — built there a
new palace out of the ruins of the old Eoman fortress,
and gave up his own palace and an old British or
Eoman church in its neighborhood, to be the seat of
the new archbishop and the foundation of the new
cathedrak If the baptism of Ethelbert may in some
measure be compared to the baptism of Constantine, so
this may be compared to that hardly less celebrated act
of the same emperor (made up of some truth and more
fable), — his donation of the " States of the Church,"
or at least of the Lateran Palace, to Pope Sylvester ;
his own retirement to Constantinople in consequence
of this resignation. It is possible that Ethelbert may
have been in some measure influenced in his step by
what he may have heard of this story. His wooden
The Cathedral, Southwest Corner,
597.] FlllST CATHEDRAL OF CANTERBURY. 45
palace was to him what the Lateran was to Constantine ;
Augustine was his Sylvester ; Eeculver was his Byzan-
tium. At any rate, this grant of house and land to
Augustine was a step of immense importance not only
in English but European history, because it was the
tirst instance in England, or in any of the countries oc-
cupied by the barbarian tribes, of an endowment by the
State. As St. Martin's and St. Pancras's witnessed the
first beginning of English Christianity, so Canterbury
Cathedral is the earliest monument of an English Church
Establishment, — of the English constitution of the
union of Church and State.^ Of the actual building of
this first cathedral, nothing now remains ; yet there is
much, even now, to remind us of it. Eirst, there is the
venerable chair, in which, for so many generations, the
primates of England have been enthroned, and which,
though probably of a later date, may yet rightly be
called " Saint Augustine's Chair ; " ^ for, though not the
very one in which he sat, it no doubt represents the
ancient episcopal throne, in which, after the fashion of
the bishops of that time, he sat behind the altar (for
that was its proper place, and there, as is well known,
it once stood), with all his clergy round him, as may
still be seen in several ancient churches abroad. Next,
there is the name of the cathedral. It was then, as it
is still, properly called " Christ Church," or the " Church
of our Saviour." We can hardly doubt that this is a
1 That the parallel of Coustantioe was present to the minds of those
concerned is evident, not merely from the express comparison bv Go-
celiu (Acta Sanctorum, p. 383), of Ethelhert to Constantine, and Au-
gustine to Sylvester, but from the ap])ellation of " Hellena" given by
Gregory to Bertha, or (as he calls her) Edilburga. (Epp., ix. 60.)
2 The arguments against the antiquity of tlie chair are, (1 ) That it
is of Purbeck marl)le; (2) That the old throne was of one ])iece uf
stone, the present is of three.
46 MONASTERY AND LIBRARY OF ST. AUGUSTINE. [597.
direct memorial of the first lauding of Augustine, when
he first announced to the pagan Saxons the faith and
name of Christ, and spread out before their eyes, on the
shore of Ebbe's Fleet, the rude painting on the large
board, which, we are emphatically told, represented to
them " Christ our Saviour." And, thirdly, there is the
curious fact, that the old church, whether as found, or
as restored by Augustine, was in many of its features
an exact likeness of the old St. Peter's at Eome, —
doubtless from his recollection of that ancient edifice in
what may be called his own cathedral city in Italy.
In it, as in St. Peter's,^ the altar was originally at the
west end. Like St. Peter's it contained a crypt made
in imitation of the ancient catacombs, in which the
bones of the apostles were originally found ; and this
was the first beginning of the crypt Avhich still exists,
and which is so remarkable a part of the present cathe-
dral. Lastly, then, as now, the chief entrance into the
cathedral was through the south door,'-^ which is a prac-
tice derived, not from the Eoman, but from the British
times, and therefore from the ruined British church
wdiich Augustine first received from Ethelbert. It is
so still in the remains of the old British churches which
are preserved in Cornwall and Scotland ; and I mention
it here because it is perhaps the only point in the whole
cathedral which reminds us of that earlier British Chris-
tianity, which had almost died away before Augustine
came.
Finally, in the neighborhood of the Church of St.
Pancras, where he had first begun to perform Christian
service, Ethelbert granted to Augustine the ground on
uiiich was to be built the monastery that afterwards
1 Willi.s"s Canterbury Cathedral, pp 20-32.
- Ibid., p. 11.
597.] MONASTERY AND LIBRARY OF ST. AUGUSTINE. 47
grew up into the great abbey called by his name. It
was, in the first instance, called the Abbey of St. Peter
and St. Paul, after the two apostles of the city of Pome,
from which Augustine and his companions had come ;
and though in after times it was chiefly known by the
name of its founder Augustine, yet its earlier appella-
tion was evidently intended to carry back the thoughts
of those who first settled within its walls far over the
sea, to the great churches which stood by the banks
of the Tiber, over the graves of the two apostles. This
monastery was designed chiefly for two purposes. One
object was, that the new clergy of the Christian mission
might be devoted to study and learning. And it may
be interesting to remember here, that of this original
intention of the monastery, two relics possibly exist,
although not at Canterbury. In the library of Corpus
Chri.sti Collecre at Cambridfie, and in the Bodleian Li-
brary at Oxford, two ancient manuscript Gospels still ex-
ist, which have at least a fair claim to be considered the
very books which Gregory sent to Augustine as marks
of his good wishes to the rising monastery, when
Lawrence and Peter returned from Britain to Eome, to
tell him the success of their mission, and from him
brought back these presents. They are, if so, the most
ancient books that ever were read in England ; as the
Church of St. Martin is the mother-church, and the
Cathedral of Canterbury the mother-cathedral of Eng-
land, so these books are, if I may so call them, the
mother-books of England, — the first beginning of Eng-
lish literature, of English learning, of English education.
And St. Augustine's Abbey was thus the mother-school,
the mother-university, of England, the seat of letters
and study at a time when Cambridge was a desolate
fen, and Oxford a tangled forest in a wide waste of
48 BURIAL-GROUXD OF ST. AUGUSTINE'S ABBEY. [597.
waters.^ They remind us that English power and Eng-
lish religion have, as from the very first, so ever since,
gone along with knowledge, with learning, and especially
with that knowledge and that learning which those two
old manuscripts give — the knowledge and learning of
the Gospel.
This was one intention of St. Augustine's IMonastery.
The other is remarkable, as explaining the situation of
the Abbey. It might be asked why so important an
edifice, constructed for study and security, should have
been built outside the city walls? One reason, as I
have said, may have been to fix it as near as possible to
the old Church of St. Pancras. But there was another
and more instructive cause : Augustine desired to have
in this land of strangers a spot of consecrated ground
where his bones should repose after death. But in the
same w^ay as the Abbey Church of Glastonbury in like
manner almost adjoins to the Chapel of St. Joseph of
Arimathea, such a place, according to the usages which
he brought with him from Eome, he could not have
within the walls of Canterbury. In all ancient coun-
tries the great cemeteries were always outside the town,
along the sides of the great highways by which it was
approached. In Jewish as well as in Ivoman history,
only persons of the very highest importance were al-
lowed what we now call intra-mural interment. So it
was here. Augustine the Roman fixed his burial-place
1 A manuscript history of the foundation of St. Augustine's Abbey
(in the library of Trinity Hall, Cambri(i<;e, to wliich it was given by
one into whose hands it fell at the time of the Dissolution) contains an
account of eight manuscripts, said to be those sent over by Gregory.
Of these all have long since disappeared, with three exceptions, — a
Bible which, however, has never been heard of since 1604, and the two
manuscript Gospels still shown at Corpus, Cambridge, and in the
Bodleian at Oxford. The arguments for their genuineness are stated
bv Wanlev, in Hickes's Thesaurus (ii. 172, 173).
597.] FOUNDATION OF THE SEE OF ROCHESTER. 49
by the side of the great Eoman road which then ran
from Kichborough to Canterbury over St. Martin's Hill,
and entering the town by the gateway which still
marks the course of the old road.^ The cemetery of St.
Augustine was an English Appian Way, as the Church
of St. Pancras was an English Ctelian Hill ; and this is
the reason why St. Augustine's Abbey, instead of the
Cathedral, has enjoyed the honor of burying the last
remains of the first primate of the English Church and
of the first king of Christian England.
For now we have arrived at the end of their career.
Nothing of importance is known of Augustine in con-
nection with Canterbury, beyond what has been said
above. We know that he penetrated as far west as the
banks of the Severn, on his important mission to the
Welsh Christians, and it would also seem that he must ^
have gone into Dorsetshire ; but these would lead us
into regions and topics remote from our present subject.
His last act at Canterbury, of which we can speak
with certainty, was his consecration of two monks who
had been sent out after him by Gregory to two new
sees, — two new steps farther into the country, still
under the shelter of Ethelbert. Justus became Bishop
of Rochester, and Mellitus Bishop of London. And
still the same association of names which we have seen
at Canterbury was continued. The memory of " St.
Andrew's Convent " on the Caelian Hill was perpetuated
1 Bede, i. 33, § 79 ; Gostling's Walk, p. 44. " A common footway-
lay through it, even till memory."
2 See the account of his conference with the Welsh, in Bede ; the
stories of his adventures in Dorsetshire, in the " Acta Sanctorum,"
p. 391. The story of his journey into Yorkshire has probahly arisen
from the mistake, before noticed, respecting the Swale. The wliole
question of his miracles, and of tlie legendary portions of his life, is too
long to be discussed in this place.
4
50 DEATH OF AUGUSTINE. [605.
in the Cathedral Church of St. Andrew on the oanks of
the i\Iedvvay. The names of Samt Peter and Saint Paul,
whicli had been combined in the abbey at Canterbury,
were preserved apart in St. Peter's at Westminster and
St. Paul's in London, which thus represent the great
Eoman Basilicas, on the banks of the Thames. How
like the instinct with which the colonists of the New
World reproduced the nomenclature of Christian and
civilized Europe, was this practice of recalling in re-
mote and barbarous Britain the familiar scenes of Chris-
tian and civilized Italy !
It was believed that Augustine expired on the 26th
of May, 605,^ his patron and benefactor, Gregory the
Great, having died on the 12th of March of the previous
year, and he was interred,- according to the custom of
which I have spoken, by the roadside in the ground now
occupied by the Kent and Canterbury Hospital. The
abbey which he had founded was not yet finished, but
he had just lived to see its foundation.^ Ethelbert came
from Eeculver to Canterbury, a few months before Au-
gustine's death, to witness the ceremony ; and the monks
were settled there under Peter, the first companion of
Augustine, as their head. Peter did not long survive
his master. He was lost, it is said, in a storm off the
coast of France, two years afterwards, and his remains
were interred in the Church of St. Mary at Boulogne.*
Bertha and her chaplain also died about the same time,
and were buried beside Augustine. There now remained
of those who had first met in the Isle of Thanet ten
years before, only Ethelbert himself, and Lawrence, who
1 Thorn (1765) gives the year; Bede (ii. 3, § 96), the day.
2 Thorn, 1767.
^ Thorn, 1761. Christmas, a. d. 605, was, according to onr reckon-
ing, on Christmas, 604.
* Thorn, 1766.
613.] BURIAL-PLACE OF AUGUSTINE. 51
had been consecrated Archbishop by Augustine himself
before his death, an unusual and almost unprecedented
step,^ but one which it was thought the unsettled state
of the newly converted country demanded. Once more
Ethelbert and Lawrence met, in the year 613, eight
years after Augustine's death, for the consecration of
the Abbey Church, on the site of which there rose in
after times the noble structure whose ruins still remain,
preserving in the fragments of its huge western tower,
even to our own time, the name of Ethelbert. Then the
bones ^ of Augustine were removed from their resting-
place by the Roman road, to be deposited in the north
transept of the church, where they remained till in the
twelfth century they wore moved again, and placed
under the high altar at the east end. Then also the
remains of Bertha and of Luidhard were brought within
the same church, and laid in the transept or apse dedi-
cated to Samt Martin ; ^ thus still keeping up the rec-
ollection of their original connection with the old
French samt, and the httle chapel where they had
so often worshipped on the hill above, — Luidhard *
1 Thorn, 1765; Bede, ii. 4, § 97.
2 Thorn, 1767. The statement in Butler's " Lives of the Saints"
(May 26) is a series of mistakes.
3 The mention of this apse, or " portions," of Saint Martin has led
to the mistake which from Fuller's time (ii. 7, § 32) has fixed the
grave of Bertha in the Church of St. Martin's on the hill. But the
elegant Latin inscription which the excellent rector of St. Martin's
has caused to be placed over the rude stone tomb which popularly
bears her name in his beautiful church, is so cautiously worded that
even if she were buried much farther off than she is, the claim which
is there set up would hardly be contradicted.
* Luidhard is so mere a shadow, that it is hardly worth while col-
lecting what is known or said of him. His name is variou.sly spelled
Lethard, Ledvard, and Luidhard. His French bishopric is variously
represented to be Soissons or Senlis. His tomb in the abbey was long
known, and his relics were carried round Canterbury in a gold chest
on the Rogation Days. (Acta Sanctorum, Feb. 24, pp. 468, 470.)
52 DEATH OF ETHELBERT. [616.
on the north, and Bertha on the south side of the
altar.
Three years longer Ethelbert reigned. He lived, as
has been already said, no longer at Canterbury, but in
the new palace which he had built for himself withm
the strong Komau fortress of Keculver, at the north-
western end of the estuary of the Isle of Thanet, though
in a different manner. The whole aspect of the place
is even more altered than that of its corresponding
fortress of Richborough, at the other extremity. The
sea, which was then a mile or more from Reculver, has
now advanced up to the very edge of the cliff on which
it stands, and swept the northern wall of the massive
fortress into the waves ; but the three other sides, over-
grown with ivy and elder bushes, still remain, with the
strong masonry which Ethelbert must have seen and
handled ; and within the enclosure stand the venerable
ruins of the church, with its two towers, which after-
wards rose on the site of Ethelbert's palace.
This wild spot is the scene which most closely con-
nects itself with the remembrance of that good Saxon
king, and it long disputed with St. Augustine's Abbey
the honor of his burial-place. Even down to the time
of King James I., a monument was to be seen in the
south transept of the church of Reculver, professing to
cover his remains ; ^ and down to our own time, I am
told, a board was affixed to the wall with the inscription
" Here lies Ethelbert, Kentish king whilonL" This, how-
ever, may have been Ethelbert II. ; and all authority leans
to the story that, after a long reign of forty -eight years
(dying on the 24th of February, 616), he was laid side
by side with his first wife Bertha,^ on the south side of
1 Weever, Funeral Monuments, p. 260.
2 That he had a second wife appears from the allusion to her in
616.] PRIMACY OF CANTERBURY. 53
St. Martin's altar in the Church of St. Augustine,^ and
there, somewhere in the field around the ruins of the
abbey, his bones, with those of Bertha and Augustine,^
probably still repose and may possibly be discovered.
These are all the direct traces which Augustine and
Ethelbert have left amongst us. Viewed in this light
they will become so many finger-posts, pointing your
thoughts along various roads, to times and countries
far away, — always useful and pleasant in this busy
world in which w^e live. But in that busy world itself
they have left traces also, which we shall do well
briefly to consider before we bid farewell to that ancient
Koman prelate and that ancient Saxon chief. I do not
now speak of the one great change of our conversion to
Christianity, which is too extensive and too serious a
the story of his son Eadbald (Bede, ii. § 102), but her name is never
mentioned.
1 Thorn, 1767 ; Bede, ii. §§ 100, 101.
'^ In the " Acta Sanctorum " for Feb. 24 (p. 478), a strange ghost-
story is told of Ethelbert's tomb, not without interest from its connec-
tion with the previous history. The priest who had the charge of the
tomb had neglected it. One night, as he was in the chapel, there suddenly
issued from the tomb, in a blaze of light which filled the whole apse,
the figure of a boy, with a torch in his hand : long golden hair flowed
round his shoulders ; his face was as white as snow ; his eyes shone
like stars. He rebuked the priest and retired into his tomb. Is it
possible that the story of this apparition was connected ■with the tradi-
tional description of the three children at Rome ?
There was a statue of Ethelbert in the south chapel or apse of St.
Pancras (Thorn, 1677), long since destroyed. But in the screen of
the cathedral choir, of the fifteenth century, he may still be seen as the
founder of the cathedral, with the model of the church in his hand. He
was canonized ; but probably as a saint he was less popularly known
than Saint Ethelbert of Hereford, with whom he is sometimes confused.
His epitaph was a curious instance of rh\Tning Latinity : —
" Rex Ethelbertns hie clauditur in polyandro,
Faua pians, Christo meat absque meandro."
Speed, 215.
54 PRIMACY OF CANTERBURY. [616.
subject to be treated of on the present occasion. But
the particular manner in which Christianity was thus
planted is in so many ways best understood by gomg
back to that time, that I shall not scruple to call your
attention to it.
First, the arrival of Augustine explains to us at once
why the primate of this great Church, the first subject
of this great empire, should be Archbishop not of
London, but of Canterbury. It had been Gregory's
intention to fix the primacy in London and York
alternately; but the local feelings which grew out of
Augustine's landing in Kent were too strong for him,
and they have prevailed to this day.^ Humble as Can-
terbury may now be, — " Kent itself but a corner of
England, and Canterbury seated in a corner of that
comer," ^ — yet so long as an Archbishop of Canterbury
exists, so long as the Church of England exists, Can-
terbury can never forget that it had the glory of being
the cradle of English Christianity. And that glory it
had in consequence of a few simple causes, far back
in the mist of ages, — the shore between the cliffs
of Ramsgate and of the South Foreland, which made
the shores of Kent the most convenient landmg-place
for the Italian missionaries ; the marriage of the wild
Saxon king of Kent with a Christian princess ; and
the good English common sense of Ethelbert when
the happy occasion arrived.
1 Greg. Epp., xii. 15. Gervase (Acta Pont., pp. 1131, 1132), thinking
that by this letter the Pope established three primacies, — one at Lon-
don, one at Canterbury, and one at York, — needlessly perplexes liim-
self to reconcile such a distribution with the geography of Britain,
and arrives at the conclusion that the Pope " licet Sancti Spiritus sa-
crarium esset," yet had fallen into the error of supposing each of the
cities to be equidistant from the other.
- Fuller, Church History, book ii. § viii. 4, in speaking of the tem-
j)orary transference of the primacy to Lichfield.
616.] EXTENT OF ENGLISH DIOCESES. 55
Secondly, we may see, in the present constitution of
Church and State in England, what are far more truly
the footmarks of Gregory and Augustine than that
fictitious footmark which he was said to have left at
Ebbe's Fleet.
There are letters from Gregory to Augustine, which
give him excellent advice for his missionary course, —
advice which all missionaries would do well to con-
sider, and of which the effects are to this day visible
amongst us. Let me mention two or three of these
points. The first, perhaps, is more curious than gen-
erally interesting. Any of you who have ever read
or seen the state of foreign churches and countries
may have been struck by one great difference, which I
believe distinguishes England from all other churches
in the world ; and that is, the great size of its dioceses.
In foreign countries you will generally find a bishop's
see in every large town; so that he is, in fact, more
like a clergyman of a large parish than what we call
the bishop of a diocese. It is a very important char-
acteristic of the English Church that the opposite
should be the case with us. In some respects it has
been a great disadvantage ; in other respects, I believe,
a great advantage. The formation of the English sees
was very gradual, and the completion of the number of
twenty-four did not take place till the reign of Henry
VIII. But it is curious that this should have been
precisely the same number fixed in Gregory's instruc-
tions to Augustine ; and, at any rate, the great size of
the dioceses was in conformity with his suggestions.
Britain, as I have said several times, was to him
almost an unknown island. Probably he thought
it might be about the size of Sicily or Sardinia, the
only large islands he had ever seen, and that twenty-
56 TOLERATION OF CHRISTIAN DIVERSITIES. [616.
four bishoprics would be sufficient. At any rate, so
he divided, and so, with the variation of giving only
four, instead of twelve, to the province of York, it was,
consciously or unconsciously, followed out in after
times. The kings of the various kingdoms seem to
have encouraged the practice, each making the bish-
opric co-extensive with his kingdom ; ^ so that the
bishop of the diocese was also chief pastor of the tribe,
succeeding in all probability to the post which the
chaplain or high-priest of the king had held in the days
of paganism. And it may be remarked that, whether
from an imitation of England or from a similarity of
circumstances, the sees of Germany ^ (in this respect
an exception to the usual practice of continental Eu-
rope) and of Scotland are of great extent.
But, further, Gregory gave directions as to the two
points which probably most perplex missionaries, and
which at once beset Augustine. The first concerned
his dealings with other Christian communities. Au-
gustine had passed through France, and saw there
customs very different from what he had seen in Eome ;
and he was now come to Britain, where there were
still remnants of the old British churches, with cus-
toms very different from what he had seen either in
France or Eome. What was he to do ? The answer
of Gregory was, that whatever custom he found really
good and pleasing to God, whether in the Church of
Italy or of France, or any other, he was to adopt it,
and use it in his new Church of England. " Things,"
he says, " are not to be loved for the sake of places, but
places for the sake of things." ^
1 See Kemble's Saxous, book ii. chap. viii.
2 Germany was, it should bo remembered, converted by Englishmen.
8 Bede, 1.27, § 60.
616.] TOLERATION OF HEATHEN CUSTOMS. 57
It was indeed a truly wise and liberal maxim, — one
which would have healed many feuds, one which per-
haps Augustine himself might have followed more than
he did. It would be too much to say that the effect
of this advice has reached to our own time; but it
often happens that the first turn given to the spirit
of an institution lasts long after its first founder has
passed away, and in channels quite different from those
which he contemplated ; and when we think what the
Church of England is now, I confess there is a satis-
faction in thinking that at least in this respect it has
in some measure fulfilled the wishes of Gregory the
Great. There is no church in the world which has
combined such opposite and various advantages from
other churches more exclusive than itself, — none in
which various characters and customs from the oppo-
site parts of the Christian world could have been able
to find such shelter and refuge.
Another point was how to deal with the pagan cus-
toms and ceremonies which already existed in the
Anglo-Saxon kingdom. Were they to be entirely de-
stroyed, or were they to be tolerated so far as was not
absolutely incompatible with the Christian religion ?
And here again Gregory gave to Augustine the advice
which, certainly as far as we could judge. Saint Paul
would have given, and which in spirit at least is an
example always. " He had thought much on the sub-
ject," he says, and he came to the conclusion that hea-
then temples were cot to be destroyed, but turned
whenever possible into Christian churches ; ^ that the
1 To Ethelbert he had expressed himself, apparently in an earlier
letter, more strongly apainst the temples. (Bede, i. .32, § 76.) "Was
it settled policy," asks Dean Milman, " or mature reflection, which led
the Pope to devolve the more o(li(^us dnty of the total abolition of idola-
try on the temporal power, the barbarian king ; while it permitted the
5S TOLERATION OF HEATHEN CUSTOMS. [616.
droves of oxen which used to be killed in sacrifice
were still to be killed for feasts for the poor ; and that
the huts which they used to make of boughs of trees
round the temples were still to be used for amuse-
ments on Christian festivals. And he gives as the
reason for this, that " for hard and rough minds it is
impossible to cut away abruptly all their old customs,
because he who wishes to reach the highest place must
ascend by steps and not by jumps." ^
How this was followed out in England, is evident.
In Canterbury we have already seen how the old hea-
then temple of Ethelbert was turned into the Church
of St. Pancras. In the same manner the sites granted
by Ethelbert for St. Paul's in London, and St. Peter's
in Westminster, were both originally places of heathen
worship. This appropriation of heathen buildings is
the more remarkable, inasmuch as it had hitherto been
very unusual in Western Christendom. In Egypt, in-
deed, the temples were usually converted into Christian
churches, and the intermixture of Coptic saints with
Egyptian gods is one of the strangest sights that the
traveller sees in the monuments of that strange land.
In Greece, also, the Parthenon and the temple of The-
seus are well-known instances. But in Eome it was
very rare. The Pantheon, now dedicated to All Saints,
is almost the only example ; and this dedication itself
took place four years after Gregory's death, and prob-
ably in consequence of his known views. The frag-
ment of the Church of St. Pancras — the nucleus, as
we have seen, of St. Augustine's Abbey — thus be-
milder or more winning course to the clergy, the protection of the hal-
lowed places and images of the heathen from insult by consecrating
them to holier uses ? " — History of Latin Christianity, ii. 59.
1 Bede, i. 30, § 74.
616.] GREAT RESULTS FROM SMALL BEGINNINGS. 59
comes a witness to an important principle ; and the
legend of the Devil's claw reads us the true lesson,
that the evil spirit can be cast out of institutions
without destroying them. Gregory's advice is, indeed,
but the counterpart of John Wesley's celebrated say-
ing about church music, that "it was a great pity the
Devil should have all the best tunes to himself ; ' and
the principle which it involved, coming from one in
his commanding position, probably struck root far
and wide, not only in England, but throughout West-
ern Christendom. One familiar instance is to be found
in the toleration of the heathen names of the days of
the weeks. Every one of these is called, as we all
know, after the name of some Saxon god or goddess,
whom Ethelbert worshipped in the days of his pagan-
ism. Through all the changes of Saxou and Norman,
Roman Catholic and Protestant, these names have
survived, but, most stril^ing of all, through the great
change from heathenism to Christianity.-' They have
survived, and rightly, because there is no harm in their
intention ; and if there is no harm, it is a clear gain to
keep up old names and customs, when their evil inten-
tion is passed away. They, like the ruin of St. Pancras,
are standing witnesses of Gregory's wisdom and mod-
eration, — standing examples to us that Christianity
does not require us to trample on the customs even
of a heathen world, if we can divest them of their
mischief.
Lastly, the mission of Augustine is one of the most
striking instances in all history of the vast results
which may flow from a very small beginning, — of tlie
1 See a full and most interesting discussion of the whole subject of
the heathen names of the week days, in Grimm's Deutsche Mythologie,
i. 111-128.
60 GREAT RESULTS FROM SMALL BEGINNINGS. [616.
immense effects produced by a single thought in the
heart of a single man, carried out consistently, delib-
erately, and fearlessly. Nothing in itself could seem
more trivial than the meeting of Gregory with the
three Yorkshire slaves in the market-place at Home;
yet this roused a feeling in his mind which he never
lost ; and through all the obstacles which were thrown
first in his own way, and then in the way of Augus-
tine, his highest desire concerning it was more than
realized. And this was even the more remarkable
when we remember who and what his instruments
were. You may have observed that I have said little
of Augustine himself, and that for two reasons : first,
because so little is known of him ; secondly, because
I must confess that what little is told of him leaves
an unfavorable impression behind. We cannot doubt
that he was an active, self-denying man, — his coming
here through so many dangers of sea and land proves
it, — and it would be ungrateful and ungenerous not to
acknowledge how much we owe to him. But still al-
most every personal trait which is recorded of him
shows us that he was not a man of any great elevation
of character, — that he was often thinking of himself,
or of his order, when we should have wished him to be
thinking of the great cause he had in hand. We see
this in his drawing back from his journey in France ;
we see it in the additional power which he claimed
from Gregory over his own companions ; we see it in
the warnings sent to him by Gregory, that he was not
to be puffed up by the wonders he had wrought in
Britain ; we see it in the haughty severity with which
he treated the remnant of British Christians in Wales,
not rising when they approached, and uttering that
malediction against them which sanctioned, if it did
616.] GREAT RESULTS FROM SMALL BEGINNINGS. 61
not instigate, their massacre by the Saxons ; we see it
in the legends which grew up after his death, telling
us how, because the people of Stroud insulted him by-
fastening a fish-tail to his back,^ he cursed them, and
brought down on the whole population the curse of
being born with tails.
I mention all this, not to disparage our great bene-
factor and first archbishop, but partly because we
ought to have our eyes open to the truth even about
our best friends, partly to show what I have said be-
fore, from what small beginnings and through what
weak instruments Gregory accx)mplished his mighty
work. It would have been a mighty work, even if it
had been no more than Gregory and Augustine them-
selves imagined. They thought, no doubt, of the
Anglo-Saxon conversion, as we might think of the
conversion of barbarous tribes in India or Africa, —
numerous and powerful themselves, but with no great
future results. How far beyond their widest vision
that conversion has reached, may best be seen at
Canterbury.
Let any one sit on the hill of the little Church of St.
Martin, and look on the view which is there spread be-
fore his eyes. Immediately below are the towers of
the great Abbey of St. Augustine, where Christian
learning and civilization first struck root in the Anglo-
Saxon race ; ^ and within which now, after a lapse of
' Gocelin notices the offence, without expressly stating the punish-
ment (c.41), and places it in Dorsetshire. The story is given in
Harris's Kent, p. 30.3 ; in Fuller's Church History, ii. 7, § 22 ; and in
Ray's Proverbs (p. 233), who mentions it especially as a Kentish
story, and as one that was very generally believed in his time on tlie
Continent. There is a long and amusing discussion on the subject in
Lambard's Kent, p. 400.
2 I have forborne to dwell on any traces of Augustine's mission be-
sides those which were left at the time. Otherwise the list would be
62 GREAT RESULTS FROM SMALL BEGINNINGS. [616.
many centuries, a new institution has arisen, intended
to carry far and wide to countries of which Gregory
and Augustine never heard, tlie blessings which they
gave to us. Carry your view on, — and there rises
high above all the magnificent pile of our cathedral,
equal in splendor and state to any, the noblest temple
or church that Augustine could have seen in ancient
Rome, rising on the very ground whicli derives its con-
secration from him. And still more than the grandeur
of the outward buildings that rose from the little
church of Augustine and the little palace of Ethelbert,
have been the mstitutions of all kinds, of which these
were the earliest cradle. From Canterbury, the first
English Christian city ; from Kent, the first English
Christian kingdom, — has, by degrees, arisen the whole
constitution of Church and State in England which
now binds together the whole British Empire. And
from the Christianity here established in England has
flowed by direct consequence, first, the Christianity
of Germany ; then, after a long interval, of North
America ; and lastly, we may trust in time, of all India
and all Australasia. The view from St. Martin's
Church is indeed one of the most inspiriting that can
be found in the world ; there is none to which I would
more willingly take any one who doubted whether a
small beginning could lead to a great and lasting good,
— none which carries us more vividly back into the
past or more hopefully forward to the future.
much enlarged by the revival of the ancient associations, visible in
St. Augustine's College, in St. Gregory's Church and burial-grouml,
and in the restored Church of St. Martin ; where the windows, although
of modern date, are interesting memorials of the past, — especially
that which represents the well-known scene of Saint ]Martin dividing
the cloak.
NOTE. 63
N O T E.
TuE statements respecting the spot of Augustine's landing
are so various that it may be worth while to give briefly the
different claimants, in order to simplify the statement in pages
82-39.
1. Ebbe's Fleet. For this the main reasons are : (1) The fact
that it was the usual landing-place in ancient Thanet, as is shown
by the tradition that Hengist, Saint Mildred, and the Danes came
there. (Lewis, p. 83; Hasted, iv, 289.) (2) The fact that
Bede's whole narrative emphatically lands Augustine in Thanet,
and not on the mainland. (3) The present situation with the
local tradition, as described in page 33.
2. The spot called the Boarded, Groin (Lewis, p. 83), also
marked in the Ordnance Survey as the landing-place of the
Saxons. But this must then have been covered by the sea.
3. Stonar, near Sandwich. (Sandwich MS., in Boys' Sand-
wich, p. 836.) But this, even if not covered by the sea, must have
been a mere island. (Hasted, iv. 585.)
4. Richborough. (Ibid., p. 838.) But this was not in the isle
of Thanet; and the story is probably founded partly on Thorn's
narrative (1758), which, by speaking of " Retesburgh, in insula
Thaneti" shows that he means the whole port, and partly on its
having been actually the scene of the final debarkation on the
mainland, as described in page 39.
64
ISLE OF THANET.
MAP OF THE ISLE OF THANET AT THE TIME OF THE
LANDING OF SAINT AUGUSTINE.
Present line of coast —
Present towns, as Deal.
Ancient line of coast . .
Ancient towns, as Reculver.
1, 2, 3, 4, the alleged landing-places.
For the best acconnt of the Roman Canterbury, see Mr. Faussett's
learned Essay read before the Archa;ologicaI Institute, July 1, 1875.
THE MURDER OF BECKET.
REPRINTED, WITH ADDITIONS,
FROM THE "QUARTERLY REVIEW," SEPTEMBER, 1853.
5/. Augustine's Gateway.
THE MURDER OF BECKET.
EVEEY one is familiar with the reversal of popular
judgments respecting individuals or events of our
own time. It would be an easy though perhaps an invidi-
ous task, to point out the changes from obloquy to ap-
plause, and from applause to obloquy, which the present
generation has witnessed ; and it would be instructive
to examine in each case how far these changes have
been justified by the facts. What thoughtful observers
may thus notice in the passing opinions of the day, it
is the privilege of history to track through the course
of centuries. Of such vicissitudes in the judgment of
successive ages, one of the most striking is to be found
in the conflicting feelings with which different epochs
have regarded the contest of Becket with Henry 11.
During its continuance the public opinion of England
and of Europe was, if not unfavorable to the Arch-
bishop, at least strongly divided. After its tragical
close, the change from indifference or hostility to un-
bounded veneration was instantaneous. In certain
circles his saintship, and even his salvation,^ was ques-
tioned ; but these were exceptions to the general enthu-
siasm. This veneration, after a duration of more than
three centuries, was superseded, at least in England, by
1 U Robertson, p. 312.
68 VARIETY OF JUDGMENTS ON THE EVENT.
a contempt as general and profound as had been the
previous admiration. And now, after three centuries
more, the revohition of the wheel of fortune has again
brought up, both at home and abroad, worshippers of
the memory of Saint Thomas of Canterbury, who rival
the most undoubting devotee that ever knelt at his
shrine in the reign of the Plantagenet kings. Indica-
tions ^ are not wanting that the pendulum which has
been so violently swung to and fro is at last about to
settle into its proper place ; and we may trust that on
this, as on many other controverted historical points, a
judgment will be pronounced in our own times, which,
if not irreversible, is less likely to be reversed than
those which have gone before. But it may contribute
to the decision upon the merits of the general question,
if a complete picture is presented of the passage of his
career which has left by far the most indelible impres-
sion, — its terrible close. And even though the famous
catastrophe had not turned the course of events for
generations to come, and exercised an influence which
is not yet fully exhausted, it would still deserve to be
minutely described, from its intimate connection with
1 The Rev. J. C. Robertson, since Canon of Canterbury, was the
first author who, in two articles in the " English Review" of 1846,
took a detailed and impartial survey of the whole struggle. To these
articles I have to acknowledge a special obligation, as having first
introduced me to the copious materials from which this account is de-
rived. This summary has since been expanded into a full biography.
A shorter view of the struggle may be seen in the narrative given by
the Dean of St. Paul's, in the third volume of the " History of Latiu
Christianity," and in the " History of England," by Dr. Pauli, to whose
kindness I have been also much indebted for some of the sources of
the " martyrdom." An interesting account of Becket's death is affixed
to the collection of his letters published in the *' Remains of the Late
]Mr. Froude." But that account, itself pervaded by a one-sided view,
is almost exclusively drawn from a single source, the narrative of
Fitzstephen.
SOURCES OF INFORMATION. 09
the stateliest of English cathedrals and with the first
great poem of the English language.
The labor of Dr. Giles has collected no less than
nineteen biographies, or fragments of biographies, all of
which appear to have been written within fifty years of
the murder, and some of which are confined to that sin-
gle subject.^ To these we must add the French biogra-
phy in verse ^ by Guerns, or Garnier, of Pont S. j\Iaxence,
which was composed only five years after the event, —
the more interesting from being the sole record which
gives the words of the actors in the language in which
they spoke ; and although somewhat later, that by
Kobert of Gloucester in the thirteenth,'^ and by Grandi-
son, Bishop of Exeter, in the fourteenth century.* We
must also include the contemporary or nearly contem-
porary chroniclers, — Gervase, Diceto, Hoveden, and
Giraldus Cambrensis and the fragment from the Lans-
downe MS. edited by Canon Eobertson ; '^ and, in the
next century, Matthew Paris and Brompton.
Of these thirty narrators, four — Edward Grim,
William Fitzstephen, John of Salisbury (who unfortu-
nately supplies but little), and the anonymous author
of the Lambeth MS. — claim to have been eyewitnesses.
Three others — William of Canterbury,^ Benedict, af ter-
1 Vitse et Epistol^ S. Thomae Cantuariensis, ed. Giles, 8 vols.
2 Part of the poem was published by Emmanuel Bekker, in the
Berlin Transactions, 1838, part ii. pp. 25-168, from a fragment in the
Wolfenbuttel MSS. ; and the whole has since appeared in the same
Transactions, 1844, from a mauu.script in the British Museum. It was
also published in Paris, by Le Roux de Lancy, in 1843.
3 This metrical "' Life and Martyrdom of Saint Thomas " (composed
in the reign of Henry III.) has l)eeu printed for the Percy Society, and
edited by Mr. Black.
•* Grandison's Life exists only in manuscript. The copy which I have
used is in the Bodleian Library (MS. 493).
5 Archaiologia Cantiana, vii. 210.
'^ A complete manuscript of William of Canterbury has been found
70 SOURCES OF INFOEMATIOX.
wards Abbot of Peterborough, and Gervase of Canter-
bury — were monks of the convent, and, though not
present at the massacre, were probably somewhere in
the precincts. Herbert of Bosham, Roger of Pontigny,
and Gamier, though not in England at the time, had
been on terms of intercourse more or less intimate with
Becket, and the two latter especially seem to have taken
the utmost pains to ascertain the truth of the facts
they relate. From these several accounts we can re-
cover the particulars of the death of Archbishop Becket
to the minutest details. It is true that, being written
by monastic or clerical historians after the national
feeling had been roused to enthusiasm in his belialf,
allowance must be made for exaggeration, suppression,
and every kind of false coloring which could set off
their hero to advantage. It is true, also, that on some
few points the various authorities are hopelessly irrec-
oncilable. But, still, a careful comparison of the narra-
tors with each other and with the localities leads to a
conviction that on the whole the facts have been sub-
stantially preserved, and that, as often happens, the truth
can be ascertained in spite, and even in consequence,
of attempts to distort and suppress it. Accordingly, few
occurrences in the Middle Ages have been so graphi-
cally and copiously described, and few give such an
insight into the manners and customs, the thoughts and
feelings, not only of the man himself, but of the entire
age, as the eventful tragedy, known successively as the
" martyrdom," the " accidental death," the " righteous
execution," and the " murder of Thomas Becket."
The year 1170 witnessed the termination of the
struggle of eight years between the king and the
by Mr. Robertson at Winchester, of which parts are published in the
" Archteologia Cautiana," vi. 4.
1170.] CORONATION OF HENRY III. 71
Archbishop ; in July the final reconciliation had been
effected with Henry in France ; in the beginning of
December, Becket had landed at Sandwich,^ — the port
of the Archbishops of Canterbury, — and thence entered
the metropolitical city, after an absence of six years,
amidst the acclamations of the people. The cathedral
was hung with silken drapery ; magnificent banquets
were prepared ; the churches resounded with organs
and bells, the palace-hall with trumpets ; and the Arch-
bishop preached in the chapter-house on the text "Here
we have no abiding city, but we seek one to come."^
Great difficulties, however, still remained. In addition
to the general question of the immunities of the clergy
from secular jurisdiction, which was the original point
in dispute between the king and the Archbishop, another
had arisen within this very year, of much less impor-
tance in itself, but which now threw the earlier contro-
versy into the shade,^ and eventually brought about the
final catastrophe. In the preceding June, Henry, with
the view of consolidating his power in England, had
caused his eldest son to be crowned king, not merely
as his successor, but as his colleague, insomuch that
by contemporary chroniclers he is always called " the
young king," sometimes even "Henry III."* In the
absence of the Archbishop of Canterbury the ceremony
of coronation was performed by Roger of Bishop's
Bridge, Archbishop of York, assisted by Gilbert Foliot
and Jocelyn the Lombard, Bishops of London and of
Salisbury, under (what was at least believed to be) the
sanction of a Papal brief. ^ The moment the intelli-
1 Gamier, 59, 9. ^ Fitzstephen, ed. Giles, i. 283.
3 Giles, Epp., i. 65.
* Hence, perhaps, the precision with which the number '■ III." is
added (for the first time) on the coins of Henry III.
^ See Milman's History of Latin Christianity, iii. 510, 511.
72 CONTEOVEESY WITH ARCHBISHOP OF YOEK. [1170.
gence was communicated to Becket, who was then m
France, a new blow seemed to be struck at his rights ;
but this time it was not the privileges of his order, but
of his office, that were attacked. The inalienable right ^
of crowning the sovereigns of England, from the time
of Augustine downwards, inherent in the See of Canter-
1 Tins contest with Beclcet for tlie privileges of tlie See of York,
thougli tlie most important, was not tlie only one -wliicli Archbishop
Eoger sustained. At the Court of Northampton tlieir crosses had al-
ready confronted each other, like hostile spears. (Fitzstephen, 226.)
It was a standing question between the two Archbishops, and Eoger
continued to maintain pre-eminence of his see against Becket's succes-
sor. " In 1176," says Fuller, "a synod was called at Westminster, the
Pope's legate being present thereat; on whose right hand sat Richard,
Archbishop of Canterbmy, as in his proper place ; when in springs
Roger of York, and finding Canterbury so seated, fairly sits him
down on Canterbury's lap, " irreverently pressing his haunches down
upon the Archbishop," says Stephen of Birchington. " It matters as
little to the reader as to the writer," the historian continues, "whether
Roger beat Richard, or Richard beat Roger ; yet, once for all, we will
reckon up the arguments which each see alleged for its proceedings,"
— wiiich accordingly follow with his usual racy humor. (Fuller's
Church History, iii. §3 ; see also Memorials of Westminster, chap, v.)
Nor Avas York the only see which contested the Primacy of Canter-
bury at this momentous crisis. Gilbert Foliot endeavored in his own
person to revive the claims of London, which had been extinct from
the fabulous age of Lucius, son of Cole. " He aims," says John of
Salisbury, in an epistle burning with indignation, — " he aims at trans-
ferring the metropolitical see to London, where he boa.sts that the
Archtiamen once sate, whilst Jupiter was worshipped there. And who
knows but that this religious and discreet bishop is planning the
restoration of the worship of Jupiter ; so that, if he cannot get the
Archbishopric in any other way, he may have at least the name and
title of Archtiamen ! He relies," continues the angry partisan, "on an
oracle of Merlin, who, inspired by I know not what spirit, is said be-
fore Augustiue".s coming to have prophesied the transference of the
dignity of Canterbury to London." (Ussher, Brit. Eccl. Ant., p. 711.)
The importance attached to this question of coronation may be further
illustrated by the long series of efhgies of the primates of Germany, in
Mayeuce Cathedral, where the Archbishops of that see— the Canter-
bury of the German Empire — are represented in the act of crowning
the German Emperors as the most characteristic trait in their archi-
episcopal careers.
1170.] CONTROVERSY WITH ARCHBISHOP OF YORK. 73
bury, had been infringed ; and with his usual ardor he
procured from the Pope letters against the three prel-
ates who had taken part in the daring act, probably
with the authority of the Pope himself. These letters
consisted of a suspension of the Archbishop of York,
and a revival of a former excommunication of the Bish-
ops of London and Salisbury. His earliest thought
on landing in England was to get them conveyed to the
offending prelates, who were then at Dover. They sent
some clerks to remonstrate with 1dm at Canterbury ;
but finding that he was not to be moved, they em-
barked for France, leaving, however, a powerful auxil-
iary in the person of Randulf de Broc, a knight to
whom the king had granted possession of the archi-
episcopal castle of Saltwood, and who was for this, if for
no other reason, a sworn enemy to Becket and his re-
turn. The first object of the Archbishop was to con-
ciliate the young king, who was then at Woodstock ;
and his mode of courting him was characteristic. Three
splendid ^ chargers, of which his previous experience of
horses enabled him to know the merits, were the gift
by which he hoped to win over the mind of his former
pupil ; and he himself, after a week's stay at Canter-
bury, followed the messenger who was to announce his
present to the prince. He passed through Eochester in
state, entered London in a vast procession that ad-
vanced three miles out of the city to meet him, and
took up his quarters at Southwark, in the palace of
the aged Bishop of Winchester, Henry of Blois, brother
of King Stephen. Here he received orders from the
young king to proceed no further, but return instantly
to Canterbury. In obedience to the command, but
professedly (and this is a characteristic illustration of
1 Fitzstephen, i. 284, 285.
74 PARTING WITH THE ABBOT OF ST. ALBANS. [1170.
much that follows) from a desire to be at his ]3ost on
Christmas Day, he relinquished his design, and turned
for the last time from the city of his birth to the city
of his death.
One more opening of reconciliation occurred. Be-
fore he finally left the vicinity of London he halted
for a few days at his manor-house at Harrow, probably
to make inquiries about a contumacious priest who then
occupied the vicarage of that town. He sent thence to
the neighboring abbey of St. Albans to request an in-
terview with the Abbot Simon.^ The Abbot came
over with magnificent presents from the good cheer of
his abbey ; and the Archbishop was deeply affected on
seeing him, embraced and kissed him tenderly, and
urged him, pressing the Abbot's hand to his heart
under his cloak and quivering with emotion, to make
a last attempt on the mind of the prince. The Abbot
went to Woodstock, but returned without success.
Becket, heaving a deep sigh and shaking his head
significantly, said, " Let be, — let be. Is it not so,
is it not so, that the days of the end hasten to their
completion ? " He then endeavored to console his
friend : " My Lord Abbot, many thanks for your fruit-
less labor. The sick man is sometimes beyond the
reach of physicians, but he will soon bear his own
judgment." He then turned to the clergy around
him, and said, with the deep feeling of an injured
primate, "Look you, my friends, the Abbot, who is
bound by no obligations to me, has done more for
me than all my brother-bishops and suffragans ; " al-
luding especially to the charge which the Abbot had
1 This interview is given at length in Matthew I'aris, who, as a
monk of St. Albans, probably derived it from the traditiou.s uf the
Abbey. (Hist. Angl., 124; Vit. Abbat., 91.)
1170.] INSULTS FKOM THE BROCS OF SALTWOOD. 75
left with the cellarer of St. Albans to supply the
Archbishop with everything during his own absence
at Woodstock. At last the day of parting came. The
Abbot, with clasped hands, entreated Becket to spend
the approaching festival of Christmas and St. Stephen's
Day at his own abbey of the great British martyr.
Becket, moved to tears, replied : " Oh, how gladly
would I come, but it has been otherwise ordered.
Go in peace, dear brother, go in peace to your church,
which may God preserve ! but I go to a suflicient
excuse for my not going with you. But come with
me, and be my guest and comforter in my many
troubles." They parted on the high ridge of the hill
of Harrow, to meet no more.
It was not without reason that the Archbishop's
mind was filled with gloomy forebodings. The first
open manifestations of hostility proceeded from the
family of the Brocs of Saltwood. Already tidings
had reached him that Eandulf de Broc had seized a
vessel laden with wine from the king, and had killed
the crew^ or imprisoned them in Pevensey Castle. This
injury was promptly repaired at the bidding of the
young king, to whom the Archbishop had sent a com-
plaint through the Prior of Dover ^ and the friendly
Abbot of St. Albans. But the enmity of the Brocs
was not so easily allayed. No sooner had the Primate
reached Canterbury than he was met by a series of
fresh insults. [Dec. 24.] Randulf, he w^as told, was
hunting down his archiepiscopal deer with his own
dogs in his own woods ; and Robert, another of the
same family, who had been a Cistercian monk, but
had since taken to a secular life, sent out his nephew
John to waylay and cut off the tails of a sumpter
1 Fitzstephen, i. 286.
76 SCENE IN THE CATHEDRAL CHRISTMAS DAY. [1170.
mule and a horse of the Archbishop. This jest, or
outrage (according as we regard it), which occurred
on Christinas Eve, took deep possession of Becket's
mind.^ On Christmas Day, after the solemn celebra-
tion of the usual midnight Mass, he entered the ca-
thedral for the services of that great festival. Before
the performance of High Mass he mounted the pulpit
in the chapter-house, and preached on the text, " On
earth, peace to men of good will." It was the reading
(perhaps the true reading) of the Vulgate version, and
had once before afforded him the opportunity of reject-
ing the argument on his return that he ought to come
in peace. " There is no peace," he said, " but to men
of good will." ^ On this limitation of the universal
message of Christian love he now proceeded to dis-
course. He began by speaking of the sainted fathers
of the church of Canterbury, the presence of whose
bones made doubly hallowed the consecrated ground.
"One martyr," he said, "they had already," — Alfege,
murdered by the Danes, whose tomb stood on the north
side of the high altar ; " it was possible," he added, " that
they would soon have another."^ The people who
thronged the nave were in a state of wild excitement ;
they wept and groaned ; and an audible murmur ran
through the church, " Father, why do you desert us so
soon ? To whom will you leave us ? " But as he went
on with his discourse, the plaintive strain gradually
rose into a tone of fiery indignation. " You would have
thought," says Herbert of Bosham, who was present,
"that you were looking at the prophetic beast, which
had at once the face of a man and the face of a lion."
He spoke, — the fact is recorded by all the biographers
without any sense of its extreme incongruity, — he
1 Fitzstepheu, i. 287. 2 ibid., 283. 3 ibid., 292.
1170.] SCENE IN THE CATHEDRAL CHRISTMAS DAY. 77
spoke of the insult of the docked tail ^ of the sumpter
mule, aud, in a voice of thunder,^ excommunicated
Randulf and Robert de Broc ; and in the same sen-
tence included the Vicar of Thirlwood, and Nigel of
Sackviile, the Vicar of Harrow, for occupying those
incumbrances without his authority, and refusing ac-
cess to his officials.^ He also publicly denounced and
forbade communication with the three bishops who
by crowning the young king had not feared to en-
croach upon the prescriptive rights of the church of
Canterbury. " May they be cursed," he said, in con-
clusion, " by Jesus Christ, and may their memory be
blotted out of the assembly of the saints, whoever shall
sow hatred and discord between me and my Lord the
King."^ With these words he dashed the candle on
the pavement,^ in token of the extinction of his ene-
mies ; and as he descended from the pulpit to pass to
the altar to celebrate Mass, he repeated to his Welsh
cross-bearer, Alexander Llewellyn, the prophetic words,
" One martyr. Saint Alfege, you have already ; another,
if God will, you will have soon." ^ The service in the
cathedral w^as followed by the banquet in his hall, at
1 According to the popular belief, the excommunication of the
Broc family was not the only time that Becket avenged a similar
offence. Lamhard, in his " Peram1)ulations of Kent," says that the
people of Stroud, near Rochester, insulted Becket as he rode through
the town, and, like the Brocs, cut off the tails of his horses. Their
descendants, as a judgment for the crime, were ever after born with
horses' tails. (See, however, the previous Lecture, p. 61.) A curse
lighted also on the blacksmiths of a town where one of that trade had
"dogged his horse." (Fuller's Worthies.) "Some in Spain (to my
own knowledge), at this very day, believe that the English, especially
the Kentish men, are born with tails for curtailing Becket's mule."
(Covel on the Greek Church, Preface, p. xv.)
2 Herbert,!. 323; Gamier, 63, 4. 3 Gamier, 71, 15.
4 Fitzstephen, i. 292. 5 Grim, ed. Giles, i. C8.
6 Fitzstephen, i. 292.
78 LAST ACTS OF BECKET. [1170.
which, although Christmas Day fell this year on a Fri-
day, it was observed that he ate as usual, in honor of
the joyous festival of the Nativity. On the next day,
Saturday, the Feast of Saint Stephen, and on Sunday,
the Feast of Saint John, he again celebrated Mass ; and
towards the close of the day, under cover of the dark,
he sent away, with messages to the King of France and
the Archbishop of Sens, his faithful servant Herbert of
Bosham, telling him that he would see him no more,
but that he was anxious not to expose him to the fur-
ther suspicions of Henry. Herbert departed with a
heavy heart,^ and with him went Alexander Llewellyn,
the Welsh cross-bearer. The Archbishop sent off an-
other servant to the Pope, and two others to the Bishop
of Norwich, with a letter relating to Hugh, Earl of
Norfolk. He also drew up a deed appointing his priest
William to the chapelry of Penshurst, with an excom-
munication against any one who should take it from
him.2 These are his last recorded public acts. On the
night of the same Sunday he received a warning let-
ter from France, announcing that he was in peril from
some new attack.^ What this was, is now to be told.
The three prelates of York, London, and Salisbury,
having left England as soon as they heard that the
Archbishop was immovable, arrived in France a few
days before Christmas,'' and immediately proceeded
to the king, who was then at the Castle of Bur, near
Bayeux.^ It was a place already famous in history
as the scene of the interview between AVilliam and
1 Herbert, i.324, 325.
2 Fitzstephen, i. 292, 293.
3 Anon. Passio Tertia, ed. Giles, ii. 156.
* Herbert, i. 319.
^ Garnier, 65 (who gives the interview in great detail) ; Florence
of Worcester, i. 153.
1170] FURY OF THE KING. 79
Harold, when the oath which led to the conquest of
England was perfidiously exacted and sworn. All
manner of rumors about Becket's proceedings had
reached the ears of Henry, and he besought the ad-
vice of the three prelates. The Archbishop of York
answered cautiously, " Ask council from your barons
and knights ; it is not for us to say what must be
done." A pause ensued ; and tlien it was added, —
whether by Eoger or by some one else does not clearly
appear, — " As long as Thomas lives, you will have
neither good days, nor peaceful kingdom, nor quiet
life." ^ The words goaded the king into one of those
paroxysms of fury to which all the earlier Plantagenet
princes were subject, and which was believed by them-
selves to arise from a mixture of demoniacal blood in
their race. It is described in Henry's son John as
"something beyond anger; he was so changed in his
whole body, that a man would hardly have known
him. His forehead was drawn up into deep furrows ;
his flaming eyes glistened ; a livid hue took the place
of color," 2 Henry himself is said at these moments
to have become like a wild beast; his eyes, naturally
dove-like and quiet, seemed to flash lightning ; his
hands struck and tore whatever came in their way. On
one occasion he flew at a messenger who brought him
bad tidings, to tear out his eyes ; at another time he
is represented as having flung down his cap, torn off
his clothes, thrown the silk coverlet from his bed, and
rolled upon it, gnawing the straw and rushes. Of such
a kind was the frenzy which struck terror through all
hearts at the Council of Clarendon, and again at North-
ampton, when with tremendous menaces, sworn upon
his usual oath, "the eyes of God," he insisted on
^ Fitzstephen, i. 390. '- Richard of Devizes, § 40.
80 THE FOUE KNIGHTS. [1170.
Becket's appearance.^ Of such a kind was the frenzy
which he showed on the present occasion. " A fellow,"
he exclaimed, " that has eaten my bread has lifted up
liis heel against me ; a fellow that I loaded with
benefits dares insult the king and the whole royal
family, and tramples on the whole kingdom ; a fel-
low that came to court on a lame horse, with a cloak
for a saddle, sits without hindrance on the throne
itself ! What sluggard wretches," he burst forth again
and again, "what cowards have I brought up in my
court, who care nothing for their allegiance to their
master! Not one will deliver me from this low-born
priest ! " ^ and with these fatal words he rushed out of
the room.
There were present among the courtiers four knights,
whose names long lived in the memory of men, and
every ingenuity was exercised to extract from them an
evil augury of the deed wdiich has made them famous,
— Eeginald Fitzurse, " son of the Bear," and of truly
" bear-like " character (so the Canterbury monks repre-
sented it) ; Hugh de Moreville, " of the city of death "
— of whom a dreadful story was told of his having
ordered a young Saxon to be boiled alive on the false
accusation of his wife ; William de Tracy, — a brave
soldier, it was said, but " of parricidal wickedness ; "
Richard le Brez, or le Bret, commonly known as Brito,
from the Latinized version of his name in the " Chron-
icles," — more tit, they say, to have been called the
" Brute." 2 They are all described as on familiar terms
1 Roger, 124, 104.
^ Will. Cant., ed. Giles, ii. 30; Grim, 68 ; Gervase, 1414.
3 Will. Cant., 31. This play on the word will appear less strange,
when we remember the legendary superstrncture bnilt on the identity
of the Trojan BruUis with the primitive Briton. See Lambard's Kent,
p. 306. Fitzurse is called simply " Reginald Bure."
1170] THEIR HISTORY. 81
with the king himself, and sometimes, in official lan-
guage, as gentlemen of the bedchamber.^ They also
appear to have been brought together by old associa-
tions. Fitzurse, Moreville, and Tracy had all sworn
homage to Becket while Chancellor. Fitzurse, Tracy,
and Bret had all connections with Somersetshire.
Their rank and lineage can even now be accurately
traced through the medium of our county historians
and legal records. Moreville was of higher rank and
office than the others. He was this very year Justice
Itinerant of the counties of Northumberlaud and Cum-
berland, where he inherited the barony of Burgh-on-
the-Sands and other possessions from his father Pioger
and his grandfather Simon. He was likewise forester
of Cumberland, owner of the Castle of Knaresborough,
and added to his paternal property that of his wife,
Helwise de Stute-ville.^ Tracy was the younger of
two brothers, sons of John de Sudely and Grace de
Traci. He took the name of his mother, who was
daughter of AVilliam de Traci, a natural son of Henry
the First. On his father's side he was descended from
the Saxon Ethelred. He was born at Toddington, in
Gloucestershire,^ where, as well as in Devonshire,* he
held large estates. Fitzurse w^as the descendant of
Urso, or Ours, who had, under the Conqueror, held
Grittleston in Wiltshire, of the Abbey of Glastonbury.
His father, Ptichard Fitzurse, became possessed, in the
reign of Stephen, of the manor of Willeton in Somer-
setshire, which had descended to Reginald a few years
1 Cubicularii.
'■^ Foss's Judges of England, i. 279.
3 Rudder's Gloucestershire, 770 ; Pedigree of the Tracys, in Britton's
Toddington.
* Liber Niger Scaccarii, 115-221.
6
82 THE KNIGHTS SET OUT. [1170.
before the time of which we are speaking.^ He was
also a tenant in chief in Northamptonshire, in tail in
Leicestershire.^ Richard the Breton was, it would ap-
pear from an incident in the murder, intimate with
Prince William, the king's brother.'^ He and his
brother Edmund had succeeded to their father Simon
le Bret, who had probably come over with the Con-
queror from Brittany, and settled in Somersetshire,
where the property of the family long continued in
the same rich vale under the Quantock Hills, which
contains Willeton, the seat of the Fitzurses.^ There
is some reason to suppose that he was related to Gil-
bert Foliot.^ If so, his enmity to the Archbishop is
easily explained.
It is not clear on what day the fatal exclamation of
the king was made. Fitzstephen '^ reports it as taking
place on Sunday, the 27th of December. Others," who
ascribe a more elaborate character to the whole plot,
date it a few days before, on Thursday the 24th, — the
whole Court taking part in it, and Roger, Archbishop of
York, giving full instructions to the knights as to their
future course. This perhaps arose from a confusion with
the Council of Barons ^ actually held after the departure
of the knights, of which, however, the chief result was
to send three courtiers after them to arrest their prog-
ress. This second mission arrived too late. The four
knights left Bur on the night of the king' fury. They
then, it was thought, proceeded by different roads to the
French coast, and crossed the Channel on the following
1 CoUinson's Somersetshire, iii. 487.
2 Liber Niger Scaccarii, 216-288. 8 Fitzstephen, i. 303.
* Collinsou's Somersetshire, iii. 514.
6 See Kobertson's Becket, 266. ^ Fitzstephen, i. 290.
^ Gamier, 65, 17 ; so also Gervase's Chronicle, 1414.
e Robertson's Becket, 268.
1170] THEY ARRIVE AT ST. AUGUSTINE'S ABBEY. 83
day. Two of them landed, as was afterwards noticed
with malicious satisfaction, at the port of " Logs " near
Dover,^ two of them at Winchelsea ;''^ and all four ar-
rived at the same hour^ at the fortress of Saltwood
Castle, the property of the See of Canterbury, but now
occupied, as we hav^e seen, by Becket's chief enemy, —
Dan Randulf of IJroc, who came out to welcome them.^
Here they would doubtless be told of the excommu-
nication launched against their host on Christmas
Day. In the darkness of the night — the long win-
ter night of the 28th of December^ — it was believed
that, with candles extinguished, and not even seeing
each other's faces, the scheme was concerted. Early
in the morning of the next day they issued orders in
the king's name ^ for a troop of soldiers to be levied
from the neighborhood to march with them to Can-
terbury. They themselves mounted their chargers and
galloped along the old Itoman road from Lymne to Can-
terbury, which, under the name of Stone Street, runs in
a straight line of nearly fifteen miles from Saltwood
to the hills immediately above the city. They pro-
ceeded instantly to St. Augustine's Abbey, outside the
walls, and took up their quarters with Clarembald, the
Abbot."
The abbey was in a state of considerable confusion at
the time of their arrival. A destructive fire had ravaged
the buildings two years before,^ and the reparations
could hardly have been yet completed. Its domestic
state was still more disturbed. It was now nearly ten
years since a feud had been raging between the in-
1 Grim, 69; Gervase's Chronicle, 1414.
2 Garnier, 66,67. 3 Fitzstephen, i. 290.
* Garuier, 66, 29. 5 Garnier, 66, 22.
« Grim, 69; Roger, i. 160; Fitzstephen, i. 29.3; Garnier, 66, 6.
"^ Gervase's Chronicle, 1414. ^ Thorn's Chronicle, 1817.
84 THE FATAL TUESDAY. [1170.
mates and their Abbot, who had been intruded on them
in 1162, as Becket had been on the ecclesiastics of
the cathedral, — but with the ultimate difterence that
whilst Becket had become the champion of the clergy,
Clarembald had stood fast by the king, his patron,
which perpetuated the quarrel between the monks and
their superior. He had also had a dispute with Becket
about his right of benediction in the abbey, and had
been employed by the king against him on a mission
in France. He would, therefore, naturally be eager to
receive the new-comers ; and with him they concerted
measures for their future movements.^ Having sent
orders to the mayor, or provost, of Canterbury to issue
a proclamation in the king's name, forbidding any one
to offer assistance to the Archbishop,^ the knights once
more mounted their chargers, and accompanied by Rob-
ert of Broc, who had probably attended them from
Saltwood, rode under the long line of wall which still
separates the city and the precincts of the cathedral
from St. Augustine's Monastery, till they reached the
great gateway which opened into the court of the
Archbishop's palace.^ They were followed by a band
of about a dozen armed men, whom they placed in the
house of one Gilbert,* which stood hard by the gate.
It was Tuesday, the 29th of December. Tuesday,
"his friends remarked, had always been a significant day
in Becket's life. On a Tuesday he w\as born and bap-
tized ; on a Tuesday he had fled from Northampton ;
on a Tuesday he had left England on his exile ; on a
1 Gervase's Chronicle, 1414. ^ Gamier, 60, 10.
8 The Archbishop's palace is now almost entirely destroyed, and its
place occupied by modern houses. But an ancient gateway on the
site of the one here mentioned, though of later date, still leads from
Palace Street into these houses.
4 Fitzstephen, i. 297.
1170.] THE FATAL TUESDAY. 85
Tuesday he had received warning of his martyrdom in
a vision at Pontigny ; on a Tuesday he had returned
from that exile. It was now on a Tuesday that the fa-
tal hour came ; ^ and (as the next generation observed)
it was on a Tuesday that his enemy King Henry was
buried, on a Tuesday that the martyr's relics were
translated ; ^ and Tuesday was long afterwards re-
garded as the week-day especially consecrated to the
saint with whose fortunes it had thus been so strangely
interwoven.^ Other omens were remarked. A sol-
dier who was in the plot whispered to one of the
cellarmen of the Priory that the Archbishop would not
see the evening of Tuesday. Becket only smiled. A
citizen of Canterbury, Eeginald by name, had told him
that there were several in England who were bent on
his death ; to which he answered, with tears, that he
knew he should not be killed out of church.^ He
himself had told several persons in France, that he
was convinced he should not outlive the year,^ and in
two days the year would be ended.
Whether these evil auguries weighed upon his mind,
or whether his attendants afterwards ascribed to his
words a more serious meaning than they really bore,
the day opened with gloomy forebodings. Before the
break of dawn the Archbishop startled the clergy of
his bedchamber by asking whether it would be possi-
ble for any one to escape to Sandwich before daylight,
and on being answered in the aftirmative, added, " Let
1 Robert of Gloucester, Life of Becket, 285.
2 Diceto (Giles), i. 377 ; Matthew Paris, 97. It was the fact of the
29th of December falling on a Tuesday that fixes the date of his death
to 1170, not 1171. (Gervase, 1418.)
^ See the deed quoted in "Journal of the British Archaeological As-
sociation," April, 1854.
* Grandison, c. 5. See p. 81. ^ Benedict. 71.
86 THE KNIGHTS ENTER THE PALACE. [1170.
any one escape who wishes." That niornmg he attended
Mass in the cathedral ; then passed a long time in the
chapter-house, confessing to two of the monks, and re-
ceiving, as seems to have been his custom, three scourg-
ings.^ Then came the usual banquet in the great hall
of the palace at three in the afternoon. He was ob-
served to drink more than usual ; and his cup-bearer,
in a whisper, reminded him of it.^ '■ He who has
much blood to shed," answered Becket, " must drink
much." ^
The dinner * was now over ; the concluding hymn or
" grace " w^as finished,^ and Becket had retired to his
private room,^ where he sat on his bed,''' talking to his
friends ; whilst the servants, according to the practice
which is still preserved in our old collegiate establish-
ments, remained in the hall making their meal of the
broken meat which was left.^ The floor of the hall was
strewn with fresh hay and straw,^ to accommodate with
clean places those who could not find room on the
benches ; ^^ and the crowd of beggars and poor,^^ who
daily received their food from the Archbishop, had
gone ^^ into the outer yard, and were lingering before
their final dispersion. It was at this moment that the
four knights dismounted in the court before the hall.^-^
The doors were all open, and they passed through the
1 Gamier, 70, 25.
- Anon. Lambeth, ed. Gile.s, ii. 121 ; Roger, 169; Garuier, 77, 2.
^ Graudisou, c. 5. See p. 61.
4 Ibid.
^ For the account of his dinners, see Herbert, 63, 64, 70, 71.
^ Grim, 70 ; Benedict, ii. 55.
■• Roger, 163. 8 Gamier, 20, 10.
^ Filzstephen, i. 189. This was in winter. In summer it would have
been fre.sh rushes and green leaves.
1' Grim, 70 ; Fitzstepheu, i. 294. " Gamier, 66, 17.
1- Fitzstephen, i. 310. i^ Gervase, 1415.
1170.] APPEARANCE OF BECKET. 87
crowd without opposition. Either to avert suspicion or
from deference to the feeling of the time, which forbade
the entrance of armed men into the peaceful precincts
of the cathedra V they left their weapons behind, and
their coats of mail were concealed by the usual cloak
and gown,2 the dress of ordinary life. One attendant,
Eadulf, an archer, followed them. They were generally
known as courtiers ; and the servants invited them to
partake of the remains of the feast. They declined,
and were pressing on, when, at the foot of the staircase
leading from the hall to the Archbishop's room, they
were met by William Fitz-Nigel, the seneschal, who
had just parted from the Primate with a permission to
leave his service and join the king in France. When
he saw the knights, whom he immediately recognized,
he ran forward and gave them the usual kiss of saluta-
tion, and at their request ushered them to the room
where Becket sat. " My Lord," he said, " here are four
knights from King Henry, wishing to speak to you." ^
" Let them come in," said Becket. It must have been
a solemn moment, even for those rough men, when they
first found themselves in the presence of the Arch-
bishop. Three of them — Hugh de Moreville, Eegi-
nald Fitzurse, and William de Tracy — had known him
long before in the days of his splendor as Chancellor
and favorite of the king. He was still in the vigor
of strength, though in his fifty-third year : his counte-
nance, if we may judge of it from the accounts at the
close of the day, still retained its majestic and striking
aspect; his eyes were large and piercing, and always
1 Grim, 70 ; Roger, 161.
2 Gamier, 66, 2.'); 67, 10; Roger, 161 ; Grim, 70. See the Arch-
bishop's permission in page 54.
^ Gamier, 67, 15.
88 THE KNIGHTS' INTERVIEW WITH BECKET. [1170.
glancing to and fro;^ and his talP figure, though really
spare and thin, had a portly look from the number of
wrappings which he bore beneath his ordinary clothes,
liound about him sat or lay on the Hoor the clergy of
his household, — amongst them, his faithful counsellor,
John of Salisbury ; William Fitzstephen, his chaplain ;
and Edward Grim, a Saxon monk of Cambridge,^ who
had arrived but a few days before on a visit.
When the four knights appeared, Becket, without
looking at tliein, pointedly continued his conversation
with the monk who sat next him, and on whose shoul-
der he was leaning.* They, on their part, entered with-
out a word, beyond a greeting exchanged in a whisper
to the attendant who stood near the door,^ and then
marched straight to where the Archbishop sat, and
placed themselves on the floor at his feet, among the
clergy who were reclining around. Radulf, the archer,
sat behind them ^ on the boards. Becket now turned
round for the first time, and gazed steadfastly on each
in silence,' which he at last broke by saluting Tracy
by name. The conspirators continued to look minutely
at one another, till Fitzurse,^ who throughout took the
lead, replied, with a scornful expression, "God help
you ! " Becket's face grew crimson,^ and he glanced
round at their countenances,^'* which seemed to gather
fire from Fitzurse's speech. Fitzurse again broke forth :
"We have a message from the king over the water;
tell us whether you will hear it in private, or in the
hearing of all." ^^ " As you wish," said the Archbishop.
1 Herbert, i. 63. ^ Fitzstephen, i. 185.
3 Herbert, i. 337. * Garuier, 67, 20, 26.
5 Benedict, 55. ^ Roger, 161 ; Gamier, 67.
■ Roger, 161. 8 Roger, 161.
Grim, 70; Gamier, 67, 18. "^ Roger, 161.
11 Grim, 70; Roger, 161 ; Garuier, 67, 10-15.
1170.] THE KNIGHTS' INTERVIEW WITH BECKET. 89
" Nay, as yo'it wish," said Fitzurse.^ " Nay, as you wish,"
said Becket. The monks, at the Archbishop's intima-
tion, withdrew into an adjoining room ; but the door-
keeper ran up and kept the door ajar, that they might
see from the outside what was going on.^ Fitzurse
had hardly begun his message, when Becket, suddenly
struck with a consciousness of his danger, exclaimed,
" This must not be told in secret," and ordered the
doorkeeper to recall the monks.^ For a few seconds the
knights were left alone with Becket ; and the thought
occurred to them, as they afterwards confessed, of kill-
ing him with the cross-staff which lay at his feet, — the
only weapon within their reach.* The monks hurried
back ; and Fitzurse, apparently calmed by their presence,
resumed his statement of the complaints of the king.
These complaints,^ which are given by various chroni-
clers in very different words, were three in number.
" The king over the water commands you to perform
your duty to the king on this side the water, instead
of taking away his crown." " Eather than take away
his crown," replied Becket, " I would give him three or
four crowns." ^ " You have excited disturbances in the
kingdom, and the king requires you to answer for them
at his court." " Never," said the Archbishop, " shall
1 Roger, 161 ; Gamier, 67, 19.
2 Roger, 161 ; Benedict, 55.
3 Roger, 162 ; Benedict, 56; Garnier, 67, 20.
* Grim, 71 ; Roger, 165 ; Garnier, 67, 25. It was probably Tracy's
thought, as his was the confession generally known.
^ In this dialogue I have not attempted to give more than the
words of the leading questions and answers, in which most of the
chroniclers are agreed. Where the speeches are recorded with great
varieties of expression, it is impossible to distinguish accurately be-
tween what was really spoken and what was afterwards written as
likely to have been spoken.
^ Benedict, 56 ; Garnier, 68.
90 THE KNIGHTS' INTERVIEW WITH BECKET. [1170.
the sea again come between me and my churcli, unless
I am dragged thence by the feet." " You have excom-
municated the bishops, and you must absolve them."
" It was not I," replied Becket, "but the Pope, and you
must go to him for absolution." He then appealed, in
language which is variously reported, to the promises
of the king at their interview in the preceding July.
Fitzurse burst forth : " What is it you say ? You charge
the king with treachery." " Eeginald, Eeginald," said
Becket, " I do no such thing ; but I appeal to the arch-
bishops, bishops, and great people, five hundred and
more, who heard it ; and you were present yourself, Sir
Eeginald." " I was not," said Eeginald ; " I never saw
nor heard anything of the kind."' " You were," said
Becket ; " I saw you." ^ The knights, irritated by con-
tradiction, swore again and again, " by God's wounds,"
that they had borne with him long enough.^ John of
Salisbury, the prudent counsellor of the Archbishop,
who perceived that matters were advancing to extremi-
ties, whispered, ■" My Lord, speak privately to them
about this." " No," said Becket ; " they make proposals
and demands which I cannot and ought not to admit." ^
He, in his turn, complained of the insults he had
received. First came the grand grievances of the pre-
ceding week. " They have attacked my servants ; they
have cut off my sumpter-niule's tail ; they have carried
off the casks of wine that were the king's own gift." ^
It was now that Hugh de Moreville, the gentlest of the
four,^ put in a milder answer : " Why did you not
1 He was remarkable for the tenacity of his memory, uever forget-
tiug what he had heard or learned. (Gervase's Chronicle.)
- Benedict, 59; Gamier, 68, 16.
3 Fitzstephen, i. 295.
4 Roger, 163; Benedict, 61 ; Gervase, 1415 ; Gamier, 68, 26.
^ Benedict, 62.
1170.1 THE KNIGHTS' INTEKVIEW WITH BECKET. 91
complain to the king of these outrages ? Why do you
take upon yourself to punish them by your own au-
thority ? " The Archbishop turned round sharply upon
him : " Hugh, how proudly you lift up your head !
When the rights of the Church are violated, I shall
wait for no man's permission to avenge them. I will
give to the king the things that are the king's, but to
God the things that are God's. It is my business, and I
alone will see to it."^ For the first time in the inter-
view, the Archbishop had assumed an attitude of de-
fiance ; the fury of the knights broke at once through
the bonds which had partially restrained it, and dis-
played itself openly in those impassioned gestures which
are now confined to the half-civilized nations of the
south and east, but which seem to have been natural
to all classes of medi;eval Europe. Their eyes flashed
fire ; they sprang upon their feet, and rushing close up
to him gnashed their teeth, twisted their long gloves,
and wildly threw tlieir arms above their heads. Fitzurse
exclaimed : " You threaten us, you threaten us ; ^ are
you going to excommunicate us all ? " One of the
others added : " As I hope for God's mercy, he shall not
do that ; he has excommunicated too many already."
The Archbishop also sprang from his couch, in a state
of strong excitement. "You threaten me," he said, " in
vain : were all the swords in England hansina over
my head, you could not terrify nie from my obedience
to God, and my Lord the Pope.^ Foot to foot shall you
find me in the battle of the Lord.^ Once I gave way.
I returned to my obedience to the Pope, and will never-
1 Roger, 163, 164.
2 Fitzstephen, i. 296. " Minas, minoe," — a common expression, as it
would seem. Compare Benedict, 71.
'^ Roger, 163; Benedict, 61 ; Gervase, 1415. * Benedict, 61.
92 THE IvNIGHTS' INTERVIEW WITH BECKET. [1170.
more desert it. And, besides, you know what there is
between you and me ; I wonder the more tliat you
should thus threaten the Archbishop in his own house."
He alluded to the fealty sworn to him while Chancellor
by Moreville, Fitzurse, and Tracy, which touched the
tenderest nerve of the feudal character. " There is
nothing," they rejoined, with an anger which they
doubtless felt to be just and loyal, — " there is nothing
between you and us which can be against the king." ^
Eoused by the sudden burst of passion on both sides,
many of the servants and clergy, with a few soldiers of
the household, hastened into the room, and ranged
themselves round the Archbishop. Fitzurse turned
to them and said, " You who are on the king's side, and
bound to him by your allegiance, stand off!" They
remained motionless, and Fitzurse called to thein a
second time, " Guard him ; prevent him from escaping ! "
The Archbishop said, "I shall not escape." On this
the knights caught hold of their old acquaintance,
William Fitz-Xigel, who had entered with the rest, and
hurried him with them, saying, " Come with us." He
called out to Becket, " You see what they are doing
with me." " I see," replied Becket ; " this is their hour,
and the power of darkness."^ As they stood at the
door, they exclaimed,^ "It is you who threaten;" and
in a deep undertone they added some menace, and en-
joined on the servants obedience to their orders. With
the quickness of hearing for which he was remarkable,
he caught the words of their defiance, and darted after
1 Fitzstephen, i. 29G ; Grim, 72 ; Anon. Passio Quinta, 174.
2 Fitzstephen, i. 296.
3 Gamier, 68, 15. For the general fact of the acuteness of his
senses, both hearing and smell, see Roger, 95. " Vix aliquid in ejns
preseutia licet longiuscule et submisse dici posset, quod nou audiret si
aurem apponere voluisset."
1170.] THE KNIGHTS' INTERVIEW WITH BECKET. 93
them to the door, entreating the'm to release Fitz-
Nigel ; ^ then he implored Moreville, as more courteous
than the others, to return ^ and repeat their message ;
and lastly, in despair and indignation, he struck his
neck repeatedly with his hand, and said, " Here, here
you will tind me." ^
The knights, deaf to his solicitations, kept their
course, seizing as they went another soldier, Eadulf
Morin, and passed through the hall and court, crying,
"To arms! to arms !" A few of their companions had
already taken post within the great gateway, to prevent
the gate being shut ; the rest, at the shout, poured in
from the house where they were stationed hard by,
with the watchword, " King's men ! King's men ! "
{Beaux ! Beaux !) The gate was instantly closed,
to cut off communication with the town ; the Arch-
bishop's porter was removed, and in front of the
wicket, which was left open, William Fitz-Nigel, who
seems suddenly to have turned against his master, and
Simon of Croil, a soldier attached to the household of
Clarembald, kept guard on horseback.* The knights
threw off their cloaks and gowns under a large syca-
more in the garden,^ appeared in their armor, and girt
on their swords.^ Fitzurse armed himself in the porch,'
with the assistance of Ptobert Tibia, trencherman of the
1 Fitzstephen, i. 296. ^ Benedict, 62 ; Gamier, 69.
3 Grim, 73 ; Roger, 163 ; Garuier, 69, 5 (though he places this speech
earlier).
* Fitzstepheu, i. 298. ^ Gervase, Acta Pout., 1672.
6 Garuier, 70, 11.
" Fitzstepheu, i. 298. The porch of the hall, built, doubtless on the
plan of the one here mentioned, by Archbishop Langton about fifty
years later, still in part remains, incorporated in one of the modern
houses now occupying the site of the Palace. There is a similar porch
in a more complete state, the only fragment of a similar hall, adjoin-
ing tlie palace at Norwich.
94 THE KNIGHTS' INTERVIEW WITH BECKET. [1170.
Archbishop. Osbert and Algar, two of the servants,
seemg their approach, shut and barred the door of the
hall, and the knights in vain endeavored to force it
open.^ But Robert of Broc, who had known the pal-
ace during the time of its occupation by his uncle Ean-
dolf,^ called out, " Follow me, good sirs, I will show
you another way ! " and got into the orchard behind
the kitchen. There was a staircase leading thence to
the antechamber between the hall and the Archbish-
op's bedroom. The wooden steps were under repair,
and the carpenters had gone to their dinner, leaving
their tools on the stairs.^ Fitzurse seized an axe, and
the others hatchets ; and thus armed they mounted
the staircase to the antechamber,^ broke through an
oriel-window which looked out on the garden,^ entered
the hall from the inside, attacked and wounded the
servants who were guarding it, and opened the door
to the assailants.^ The Archbishop's room was still
barred and inaccessible.
Meanwhile Becket, who resumed his calmness as
soon as the knights had retired, reseated himself on his
couch, and John of Salisbury again urged moderate
counsels/ in words which show that the estimate of
the Archbishop in his lifetime justifies the impression
of his vehement and unreasonable temper which has
prevailed in later times, though entirely lost during
the centuries which elapsed between his death and
the Eeformation. "It is wonderful, my Lord, that
you never take any one's advice; it always has been,
1 Fitzstephen, i. 297, 298.
2 Fitzstephen, i. 298 ; Roger, 165; Garuier, 70.
3 Roger, 165; Benedict, 63.
* Grim, 73; Fitzstephen, i. 298 ; Garuier, 70, 1.
5 Garnier, 70, 2. 6 Benedict, 63.
7 Fitzstephen, i. 298 ; Benedict, 62.
1170.] THEIR ASSAULT ON THE PALACE. 95
and always is your custom, to do and say what seems
good to yourself alone." " What would you have me
do, Dan John ? " ^ said Becket. " Yon ought to have
taken counsel with your friends, knowing as you do
that these men only seek occasion to kill you," " I
am prepared to die," said Becket. "We are sinners,"
said John, " and not yet prepared for death ; and I see
no one who wishes to die without cause except you."'-^
The Archbishop answered, " Let God's will he done." ^
" Would to God it might end well ! " sighed John, in
despair.** The dialogue was interrupted by one of the
monks rushing in to announce that the knights were
arming. " Let them arm," said Becket. But in a few
minutes the violent assault on the door of the hall,
and the crash of a wooden partition in the passage
from the orchard, announced that the danger was close
at hand. The monks, with that extraordinary timidity
which they always seem to have displayed, instantly
fled, leaving only a small body of his intimate friends
or faithful attendants.^ They united in entreating him
to take refuge in the cathedral. " No," he said : " fear
not ; all monks are cowards." ^ On this some sprang
upon him, and endeavored to drag him there by main
force ; others urged that it was now five o'clock, that
vespers were beginning, and that his duty called him
to attend the service. Partly forced, partly persuaded
by the argument," partly feeling that his doom called
1 Roger, 164 ; Garnier, 69, 25.
^ Garnier, 70, 10.
8 Roger, 164; Benedict, 02; Garnier, 70, 10.
* Benedict, 62. ^ Garnier, 70, 16.
6 Roger, 165; Fitzstephen, i. 298.
' Fitzstephen, i. 299. He had dreamed or anticipated that he should
be killed in church, and had communicated his apprehensions to the
abbots of Poutigny and Val-Luisant (Benedict, 65), and, as we have
seen, to a citizen of Canterbury on the eve of this day.
96 MIRACLE OF THE LOCK. [1170.
him thither, he rose and moved ; but seeing that his
cross-staff was not as usual borne before him, he
stopped and called for it.^ He remembered, perhaps,
the memorable day at the Council of Northampton,
when he had himself borne the cross ^ through the
royal hall to the dismay and fury of his opponents. His
ordinary cross-bearer, Alexander Llewellyn, had, as we
have seen, left him for France^ two days before, and
the cross-staff was therefore borne by one of his clerks,
Henry of Auxerre.^ They first attempted to pass along
the usual passage to the cathedral, through the orchard,
to the western front of the church. But both court
and orchard being by this time thronged with armed
men,^ they turned through a room which conducted to
a private door '^ that was rarely used, and which led
from the palace to the cloisters of the monastery. One
of the monks ran before to force it, for the key was lost.
Suddenly the door flew open as if of itself ; ''' and in the
confusion of the moment, when none had leisure or
inclination to ask how so opportune a deliverance oc-
curred, it was natural for the story to arise which is
related, with one exception,^ in all the narratives of the
period, — that the bolt came off as though it had merely
1 Fitzstephen, i. 296; Benedict, 64. 2 Herbert, i. 14.3.
3 Herbert, i. 330. * Fitzstephen, i. 299.
5 Roger, 165. ^ Garnier, 71.
■^ Grim, 73; Roger, 166 ; Garnier, 17, 9.
8 Benedict, 64. It is curious that a similar miracle was thought to
have occurred on his leaving the royal castle at Northampton. He
found the gate locked and barred. One of his servants caught sight
of a bundle of keys hanging aloft, seized it, and with wonderful quick-
ness (quod quasi iiiiraculum quihusdam r/s((m e.s^), picked out the right
key from the tangled mass, and opened the door. (Roger, 142.) The
cellarman Richard was the one who had received intimation of the
danger (as mentioned in page 85), and who would therefore be on
the watch. See Willis's Conventual Buildings of Christ Church,
p. 116.
1170] SCENE IN THE CATHEDRAL. 97
bsen fastened on by glue, and left their passage free.
This one exception is the account by Benedict, then a
monk of the monastery, and afterwards Abbot of Peter-
borough ; and his version, compared with that of all
the other historians, is an instructive commentary on
a thousand fables of a similar kind. Two cellarmen,
he says, of the monastery, Richard and William, whose
lodgings were in that part of the building, hearhig the
tumult and clash of arms, flew to the cloister, drew
back the bolt from the other side, and opened the door
to the party from the palace. Benedict knew nothing
of the seeming miracle, as his brethren were ignorant
of the timely interference of the cellarmen. But both
miracle and explanation would at the moment be alike
disregarded. Every monk in that terrified band had
but a single thought, — to reach the church with their
master in safety. The whole march was a struggle be-
tween the obstinate attempt of the Primate to preserve
his dignity, and the frantic eagerness of his attendants
to gain the sanctuary. As they urged him forward, he
colored and paused, and repeatedly asked them what
they feared. The instant they had passed through the
door which led to the cloister, the subordinates Hew to
bar it behind them, which he as peremptorily forbade.^
For a few steps he walked firmly on, with the cross-
bearer and the monks before him ; halting once and
looking over his right shoulder, either to see whether
the gate was locked, or else if his enemies were pur-
suing. Then the same ecclesiastic who had hastened
forward to break open the door called out, " Seize him,
and carry him ! " ^ Vehemently he resisted, but in vain.
Some pulled him from before, others pushed from be
hind.'^ Half carried, half drawn, he was borne along
1 Fitzstephen, i. 292. 2 Roger, 166. » Garuier, 71, 27.
7
98 SCENE IN THE CATHEDRAL. [1170.
the northern and eastern cloister, crying out, " Let me
go ; do not drag me ! " Thrice they were delayed, even
in that short passage ; for thrice he broke loose from
them, — twice in the cloister itself, and once in the
chapter-house, which opened out of its eastern side.^
At last they reached the door of the lower north tran-
sept of the cathedral, and here was presented a new
scene.
The vespers had already begun, and the monks were
singing the service in the choir, when two boys rushed
up the nave, announcing, more by their terrified ges-
tures than by their words, that the soldiers were burst-
ing into the palace and the monastery.^ Instantly the
service was thrown into the utmost confusion ; part
remained at prayer, part tied into the numerous hid-
ing-places which the vast fabric affords, and part went
down the steps of the choir into the transept to meet
the little band at the cloor.^ " Come in, come in ! "
exclaimed one of them ; " come in, and let us die to-
gether ! " The Archbishop continued to stand outside,
and said, " Go and finish the service. So long as you
keep in the entrance, I shall not come in." They fell
back a few paces, and he stepped within the door;
but finding the whole place thronged with people, he
paused on the threshold and asked, " What is it that
these people fear ? " One general answer broke forth,
" The armed men in the cloister." As he turned and
said, " I shall go out to them," he heard the clash of
arms behind.* The knights had just forced their way
1 Roger, 166. It is from this mention of the chapter-house, which
occupied the same relative position as the present one, tliat we ascer-
tain the sides of the cloister by which Becket came.
2 Will. Cant., 32.
8 Fitzstephen, i. 294.
* Benedict, 64 ; Herbert, 330.
The East Choir.
1170.] ENTRANCE OF THE KNIGHTS. 99
into the cloister, and were now (as would appear from
their being thus seen through the open door) advanc-
ing along its southern side. They were in mail, which
covered their faces vip to their eyes, and carried their
swords drawn.^ With them was Hugh of Horsea, sur-
named Mauclerc, a subdeacon, chaplain of Eobert de
Broc.^ Three had hatchets.^ Fitzurse, with the axe
he had taken from the carpenters, was foremost, shout-
ing as he came, "Here, here, king's men!" Immedi-
ately behind him followed Eobert Fitzranulph,* with
three other knights, whose names are not preserved ;
and a motley group — some their own followers, some
from the town — with weapons, though not in armor,
brought up the rear.^ • At this sight, so unwonted in
the peaceful cloisters of Canterbury, not probably be-
held since the time when the monastery had been
sacked by the Danes, the monks within, regardless of
all remonstrances, shut the door of the cathedral, and
proceeded to barricade it with iron bars.^ A loud
knockhig was heard from the terrified band without,
who, having vainly endeavored to prevent the entrance
of the knights into the cloister, now rushed before
them to take refuge in the church." Becket, who had
stepped some paces into the cathedral, but was resist-
ing the solicitations of those immediately about him
to move up into the choir for safety, darted back, call-
ing aloud as he went, " Away, you cowards ! By virtue
of your obedience I command you not to shut the door ;
the church must not be turned into a castle." ^ With
1 Garnier, 71, 10. 2 Qervase, Acta Pont., 1672.
3 Garnier, 71, 12. * Foss's Judges, i. 243.
5 Fitzstephen, i. 300. « Herbert, 331 ; Benedict, 65.
■^ Anon. Lambeth, 121. Herbert (331) describes the knocking, but
mistakingly supposes it to be tlie knights.
8 Garnier, 71, 24. This speech occurs in all.
100 ENTRANCE OF THE KNIGHTS. [1170.
his own hands he thrust them away from tlie door,
opened it himself, and catching hokl of the exchided
monks, dragged them into the building, exclaiming,
"Come in, come in, — faster, faster I"^
At this moment the ecclesiastics who had liitherto
clung round him fled in every direction, — some to the
altars in the numerous side chapels, some to the secret
chambers with which the walls and roof of the cathe-
dral are filled. One of them has had the rashness to
leave on record his own excessive terror.^ Even John
of Salisbury, his tried and faithful counsellor, escaped
with the rest Three only remained, — Eobert, Canon
of Merton, his old instructor ; William Fitzstephen (if
we may believe his own account), his lively and
worldly-minded chaplain ; and Edward Grim, the Saxon
monk.^ William, one of the monks of Canterbury,
who has recorded his impressions of the scene, con-
fesses that he fled with the rest. He was not ready
to confront martyrdom, and with clasped hands ran as
fast as he could up the steps.* Two hiding-places had
been specially pointed out to the Archbishop. One
was the venerable crypt of the church, with its many
dark recesses and chapels, to which a door then as now
opened immediately from the spot where he stood ; the
other was the Chapel of St. Blaise in the roof, itself
communicating by a gallery with the triforium of the
cathedral, to which there was a ready access through
a staircase cut in the thickness of the wall at the cor-
ner of the transept.^ But he positively refused. One
last resource remained to the stanch companions who
i Benedict, 65.
- William of Canterbury (in the Winchester MS.).
3 Fitzstephen, i. 301.
* Will. Cant., published in " Archajologia Cantiana," vi. 42.
5 Fitzstephen, i. 301.
1170.] TRANSEPT OF "THE MARTYRDOM." 101
Stood by him. They urged him to ascend to the choir,
and hurried him, still resisting, up one of the two flights
of steps which led thither.^ They no doubt considered
that the greater sacredness of that portion of the church
would form their best protection. Becket seems to have
given way, as in leaving the palace, from the thought
flashing across his mind that he would die at his post.
He would go (such at least was the impression left on
their minds) to the high altar, and perish in the Patri-
archal Chair, in which he and all his predecessors from
time immemorial had been enthroned.^ But this was
not to be.
What has taken long to describe must have been com-
pressed in action within a few minutes. The knights,
who had been checked for a moment by the sight of
the closed door, on seeing it unexpectedly thrown open,
rushed into the church. It was, we must remember,
about five o'clock in a winter evening ; ^ the shades of
night were gathering, and were deepened into a still
darker gloom within the high and massive walls of
the vast cathedral, which was only illuminated here
and there by the solitary lamps burning before the
altars. The twilight,* lengthening from the shortest
day a fortnight before, was but just sufficient to reveal
the outline of objects. The transept^ in which the
knights found themselves is the same as that which,
1 Roger, 166.
2 Anon. Lambeth, 121 ; Gervase's Chronicle, 1443.
3 " Nox longissima instabat." — Fitzstephen, i. 301.
* The 29th of December of that year corresponded (by the change
of style) to our 4th of January.
^ Gamier, 74, 1 1 : —
" Pur I'iglise del nort e en I'ele del nort,
Envers le nort suffri li bous sainz Thomas mort."
For the ancient arrangements of " the martyrdom," see Willis's Ac-
102 TRANSEPT OF "THE MARTYRDOM." [1170.
though with considerable changes in its arrangements,
is still known by its ancient name of " The Martyrdom."
Two staircases led from it, — one from the east to the
northern aisle, one on the west to the entrance of the
choir. At its southwest corner, where it joined the nave,
was the little chapel and altar of the Virgin, the especial
patroness of the Archbishop. Its eastern apse was
formed by two chapels, raised one above the other ; the
upper in the roof, containing the relics of Saint Blaise,
the first martyr whose bones had been brought into the
church and which gave to the chapel a peculiar sanctity ;
the lower containing^ the altar of St. Benedict, under
whose rule from the time of Dunstan the monastery had
been placed. Before and around this altar were the tombs
of four Saxon and two Norman Archbishops. In the
centre of the transept was a pillar, supporting a gallery
leading to the Chapel of St. Blaise,^ and hung at great
festivals with curtains and draperies. Such was the
outward aspect, and such the associations, of the scene
which now, perhaps, opened for the first time on the four
soldiers. But the darkness, coupled with the eagerness
to find their victim, would have prevented them from
noticing anything more than its prominent features.
couut of Canterbury Cathedral, pp. 18, 40, 71, 96. The chief changes
since that time are : —
(1 ) The removal of the Lady Chapel in the Nave.
(2) Tlie removal of the central pillar.
(.3) The enlargement of the Chapel of St. Benedict.
(4) The removal of the Chapel of St. Blaise.
(5) The removal of the eastern staircase.
In the last two points a parallel to the old arrangement may still
be found in the southern transept.
1 It may be mentioned, as an instance of Hume's well-known in-
accuracy, tiiat he represents Becket as taking refuge " in the church
of St. Benedict," evidently thinking, if he thought at all, tliat it was
a parish church dedicated to that saint.
■- Garnier, 72-79, 6; Willis's Canterbury Cathedral, p. 47.
1170.] MEETING OF KNIGHTS AND ARCHBISHOP. 103
At the moment of their entrance the central pillar
exactly intercepted their view of the Archbishop as-
cending (as would appear from this circumstance) the
eastern staircase.^ Fitzurse, with his drawn sword
iu one hand, and the carpenter's axe in the other,
sprang in first, and turned at once to the right of the
pillar. The other three went round it to the left. In
the dim twilight they could just discern a group of fig-
ures mounting the steps.^ One of the knights called
out to them, "Stay!" Another, "Where is Thomas
Becket, traitor to the king ? " No answer was returned.
None could have been expected by any who remem-
bered the indignant silence with which Becket had
swept by when the same word had been applied by
Randulf de Broc, at Northampton.^ Fitzurse rushed
forward, and stumbling against one of the monks on
the lower step,* still not able to distinguish clearly in
the darkness, exclaimed, " Where is the Archbishop ? "
Instantly the answer came : " Eeginald, here I am, — no
traitor, but the Archbishop and Priest of God ; what
do you wish ? " ^ and from the fourth step,^ which he
had reached in his ascent, with a slight motion of his
head, — noticed apparently as his peculiar manner in
moments of excitement," — Becket descended to the
transept. Attired, we are told, in his white rochet,^
with a cloak and hood thrown over his shoulders, he thus
suddenly confronted his assailants. Fitzurse sprang
back two or three paces, and Becket passing ^ by him
1 Gamier, 72, 10. 2 Qarnier, 72, 11.
3 Roger, 142. * Gamier, 72, 14.
s Gervase, Acta Pont., 1672; Gamier, 72, 15.
fi Gervase, Acta Pont., 1673.
7 As in his interview with the Abbot of St. Albans at Harrow. See
p. 74.
•^ Grandison, c. 9. « Grim, 75; Roger, 166.
104 THE STRUGGLE. [1170.
took up his station between the central pillar ^ and the
massive wall which still forms the southwest corner of
what was then the Chapel of St. Benedict.^ Here they
gathered round him, with the cry, " Absolve the bishops
whom you have excommunicated." " I cannot do other
than I have done," he replied; and turning^ to Fitzurse,
he added, " Keginald, you have received many favors at
my hands ; why do you come into my church armed ? "
Fitzurse planted the axe against his breast, and returned
for answer, " You shall die; I will tear out your heart.""*
Another, perhaps in kindness, striking him between the
shoulders with the fiat of his sword, exclaimed, " Fly ;
you are a dead man." ^ "I am ready to die," replied
the Primate, " for God and the Church ; but I warn you,
I curse you in tlie name of God Almighty, if you do not
let my men escape."^
The well-known horror which in that age was felt at
an act of sacrilege, together with the sight of the crowds
who were "' rushing in from the town through the nave,
turned their efforts for the next few moments to carry
him out of the church.^ Fitzurse threw down the
axe,^ and tried to drag him out by the collar of his long
cloak,io calling, " Come with us ; you are our prisoner."
" I will not fly, you detestable fellow !" ^^ was Becket's
reply, roused to his usual vehemence, and wrenching
I Roger, 166.
- Willis's Canterbury Cathedral, p. 41. It was afterwards preserved
purposely.
3 Garnier, 72, 20.
4 Grim, 79; Anon. Pa.ssio Quinta, 176.
5 Grim, 75, 76; Roger, 166.
6 Herbert, 338; Garnier, 72, 25; Fitzstephen, i. 302; Grim, 76;
Roger, 166. '' Anon. Lamb., 122 ; Fitzstephen, i. 302.
* Grim, 76; Roger, 166.
9 Fitzstephen, i. .302 ; Benedict, 88. i^ Garnier, 72, 20, .30.
II " Vir abominabilis." — Gervase, Acta Pont., 1073.
1170] THE STRUGGLE. 105
the cloak out of Fitzurse's grasp.^ The three knights,
to whom was now added Hugh Mauclerc, chaplain of
Eobert de Broc,^ struggled violently to put him on
Tracy's shoulders.^ Becket set his back against the
pillar,* and resisted with all his might ; whilst Grim,^
vehemently remonstrating, threw his arms around him
to aid his efforts. In the scuflle Becket fastened upon
Tracy, shook him by his coat of mail, and exerting his
great strength, flung him down on the pavement.^ It
was hopeless to carry on the attempt to remove him ;
and in the final struggle which now began, Fitzurse,
as before, took the lead. But as he approached with
his drawn sword, the sicjht of him kindled afresh the
Archbishop's anger, now heated by the fray ; the spirit
of the chancellor rose within him, and with a coarse "*
epithet, not calculated to turn away his adversary's
wrath, he exclaimed, " You profligate wretch, you are
my man, — you have done me fealty, — you ought not
to touch nie ! " ^ Fitzurse, glowing all over with rage,
1 Gamier, 73, 21.
2 Roger, 166; Garuier, 71.
8 Roser, 166.
* Garnier, 72, 73, 5 ; Grim, 75.
s Fitzstepheu, i. 302 ; Garnier, 73, 6.
» Benedict, 66; Roger, 166; Gervase, Acta Pont., 1173; Herbert,
331 ; Garnier, 72, 30. All but Herbert and Garuier believe this to
have been Fitzurse ; but the reference of Herbert to Tracy's confession
is decisive.
^ "Lenonem appellans." — Roger, 167; Grim, 66. It is this part
of the narrative tliat was so ingeniously, and, it must be confessed, not
altogether without justice, selected as the ground of the official account
of Becket's death, published by King Henry VIII., and representing
him as having fallen in a scuffle with the knights, in which he and they
were equally aggressors. The violence of Becket's language was well
known. His usual name for Geoffrey Riddell, Arrhdraron of Canter-
bury, was Archdvvil. Anselm, the king's brother, he called a "cata-
mite and bastard."
8 Grim, 66.
106 THE MURDER. [1170.
retorted, " I owe you no fealty or homage, contrary to
my fealty to the king ; " ^ and waving the sword over
his head cried, " Strike, strike ! " {Fercz, fercz !) but
merely dashed off his cap. The Archbishop covered
his eyes with his joined hands, bent his neck, and said,^
" 1 commend my cause and the cause of the Church to
God, to Saint Denys the martyr of France, to Saint
Alfege, and to the saints of the Church." Meanwhile
Tracy, who since his fall had thrown off his hauberk ^
to move more easily, sprang forward, and struck a more
decided blow, (irim, who up to this moment had his
arm round Becket, threw it up, wrapped in a cloak, to
intercept the blade, Becket exclaiming, " Spare this de-
fence ! " The sword lighted on the arm of the monk,
which fell wounded or broken ; * and he fled disabled to
the nearest altar,^ probably that of St. Benedict within
the chapel. It is a proof of the confusion of the scene,
that Grim, the receiver of the blow, as well as most of the
1 Grim, 66; Roger, 167; Gamier, 73, 11.
'^ Garuier, 73, 25. These are in several of the accounts made his
last words (Roger, 167 ; Alan, 336, and Addit. to John of Salisbury,
376) ; but this is doubtless the moment when they were spoken.
^ Garnier, 73, 1.
* Garuier, 73, 18. The words in which this act is described in
almost all the chronicles have given rise to a curious mistake : " Bra-
chium Edwardi G vim fere abseidit." By running together tliese two
words, later writers have produced the name of " Grimfere." Many
similar coufusious will occur to classical scholars. lu most of the
mediisval pictures of the murder, Grim is i-epreseuted as the cross-
bearer, which is an error. Grandison alone speaks of Grim " cum
cruce." The acting cross-bearer, Henry of Auxerre, had doubtless
fled. Another error respecting Grim has been propagated in much
later times by Thierry, who, for the sake of supporting his theory
that Becket's cause was tliat of the Saxons against the Normans,
represents him as remonstrating against the Primate's acquiescence in
the Constitutions of Clarendon. The real cross-bearer, who so remon-
strated (Alan of Tewkesbury, i. 340), was uot a Saxon, but a Welsh-
man (see Robertson, 335).
5 Will. Cant., 32.
1170] THE MURDER. 107
narrators, believed it to liave been dealt by Fitzurse,
while Tracy, who is known to have been ^ the man from
his subsequent boast, believed that the monk whom he
had wounded was John of Salisbury. The spent force of
the stroke descended on Becket's head, grazed the crown,
and finally rested on his left shoulder,^ cutting through
the clothes and skin. The next blow, whether struck
by Tracy or Fitzurse, was only with the fiat of the
sword, and again on the bleeding head,^ which Becket
drew back as if stunned, and then raised his clasped
hands above it. The blood from the first blow was
trickling down his face in a thin streak ; he wiped it
with his arm, and when he saw the stain, he said, " Into
thy hands, O Lord, I commend my spirit." At the
third blow, which was also from Tracy, he sank on his
knees, — his arms falling, but his hands still joined as
if in prayer. With his face turned towards the altar
of St. Benedict, he murmured in a low voice, — which
might just have been caught by the wounded Grim,"*
who was crouching close by, and who alone reports the
words, — "For the name of Jesus, and the defence of
the Church, I am willing to die." Without moving
hand or foot,^ he fell fiat on his face as he spoke, in
front of the corner wall of the chapel, and with such
dignity that his mantle, which extended from head to
foot, was not disarranged. In this posture he received
from Pilchard the Breton a tremendous blow, accom-
panied with the exclamation (in allusion to a quarrel
of Becket with Prince William), " Take this for love of
my Lord William, brother of the king ! " *^ The stroke
1 Will. Cant , 33; Fitzstephen, i. 302; Gamier, 73, 17.
2 Gamier 73, 8. 3 will. Cant., 32 ; Grim, 66
* Grim, 66. 5 Qervase's Chrouicle, 2466.
6 Fitzstephen, i. 303
108 THE MURDER. [1170.
was aimed with such violence that the scalp or crown
of the head ^ — which, it was remarked, was of unusual
size — was severed from the skull, and the sword
snapped in two on the marble pavement.^ The fracture
of the murderous weapon was reported by one of the
eyewitnesses as a presage of the ultimate discomfiture
of the Archbishop's enemies.^ Hugh of Horsea, the
1 Grim, 77; Roger, 167; Passio Quinta, 177. Great stress was
laid ou this, as having been the part of his head which had received
the sacred oil. (John of Salisbury, 376.) There was a dream, by
which he was said to have been troubled at Pontigny, — curious, as in
some respects so singularly unlike, in others so singularly like, his
actual fate. He was at Rome, pleading his cause before the Pope and
cardinals ; the adverse cardinals rushed at him with a shout that
drowned the remonstrances of the Pope, and tried to pluck out his eyes
with tlieir fingers, then vanished, and were succeeded by a band of
savage men, who struck off his scalp, so that it fell over his forehead.
(Grim, 58.)
2 Benedict, GG. For the pavement being marble, see Benedict, 66,
and Gamier, 79, 19. Barouius (vol. xix. p. 379) calls it"lapideum
pavimentum." A spot is still shown iu Canterbury Cathedral, with a
square piece of stone said to have been inserted in the stone pavement
in the place of a portion taken out and sent to Rome. That the spot
so marked is j^recisely the place wliere Bucket fell, is proved by its
exact accordance with the localities so minutely described in the several
narratives. But whether the tiagstoues now remaining are really the
same, must remain in doubt. The piece said to have been sent to
Rome, I ascertained, after diligent inquiry, to be no longer in existence ;
and Mr. Robertson has clearly pointed out that the passage quoted, iu
earlier editions of this work, from Barouius (vol. xix. p. 371) in proof
of the story, has no bearing upon it ; and also that the tradition re-
specting it at Canterbury cannot be traced be3'ond the beginning of
this century. Another story states that Benedict, when appointed
Abbot of Peterborough in 1177, being vexed at finding that his pre-
decessor had pawned or sold the relics of the abbey, returned to Can-
terbury, and carried off, amongst other memorials of Saint Thomas,
the stones of the pavement which had been sprinkled with his blood,
and had two altars made from them for Peterborough Cathedral. Still,
as the wliole floor must have been flooded, he may have removed only
those adjacent to the flagstone from which the piece was taken, — a sup-
position with which tlie present appearance of the flagstone remark-
ably corresponds.
3 Will. Cant. (Arch. Cant., vi. 42).
H i iiii tiw iiii ii'1% '
The Tiansi'pt of the Martyrdom.
1170.] THE MURDER. 109
subdeacon who had joined them as they entered the
church,^ taunted by the others with having taken no
share in the deed, planted his foot on the neck of tlie
corpse, thrust his sword into the ghastly wound, and
scattered the brains over the pavement. " Let us go,
let us go," he said, in conclusion. " The traitor is dead ;
he will rise no more." ^
This was the final act. One only of the four knights
had struck no blow. Hugh de Moreville throughout
retained the gentler disposition for which he was dis-
tinguished, and contented himself with holding back
at the entrance of the transept the crowds who were
pouring in through the nave.^
The murderers rushed out of the church, through
the cloisters, into the palace Tracy, in a confession
made long afterwards to Bartholomew, Bishop of Exeter
said that their spirits, which had before l^een raised to
the highest pitch of excitement, gave way when the
deed was perpetrated, and that they retired with trem-
bling steps, expecting the earth to open and swallow
them up.^ Such, however, was not their outward de-
meanor, as it was recollected by the monks of the place.
With a savage burst of triumph they ran, shouting, as
if in battle, the watchword of the kings of England,^
" The king's men, the king's men ! " wounding, as
they went, a servant of the Archdeacon of Sens for
lamenting the murdered prelate.*^ Eobert de Broc, as
1 Benedict (66) ascribes this to Brito ; tlie anonymous Passio
Quinta (177) to Fitzurse ; Herbert (345) and Grandison (iv. 1) to
Robert de Broc; the rest to Maucleri'.
2 Fitzstephen, i. 30.3 ; Roger, 268 ; Benedict, 67 ; Gamier, 74, 25.
3 Roger, 108 ; Grim, 77 ; Gamier, 74, 11.
4 Herbert, 351 ; Grandison, c. 9.
5 Gamier, 74, 1 ; Grim, 79 ; Roger, 168 ; Fitzstephen, i. 305.
6 Fitzstephen, i 305. See Ducauge in voce; Robertson, p. 282.
110 PLUNDER OF THE PALACE. [1170.
knowing tlie palace, had gone before to take possession
of the private apartments. There they broke open the
bags and coffers, and seized many papal bulls, charters,^
and other documents, which Kandulf de I>roc sent
to the king. They then traversed the whole of the
palace, plundering gold and silver vases,^ the magnifi-
cent vestments and utensils employed in the services
of the church, the furniture and books of the chap-
lains' rooms, and, lastly, the horses from the stables, on
which Becket had prided himself to the last, and on
which they rode off.^ The amount of plunder was esti-
mated by Fitzstephen at two thousand marks. To their
great surprise they found two haircloths among the ef-
fects of the Archbishop, and threw them away. As the
murderers left the cathedral, a tremendous storm of
thunder and rain burst over Canterbury, and the night
fell in thick darkness ^ upon the scene of the dreadful
deed.
The crowd was every instant increased by the multi-
tudes flocking in from the town on the tidings of the
event. There was still at that moment, as in his life-
time, a strong division of feeling ; and Grim overheard
even one of the monks declare that the Primate had
paid a just penalty for his obstinacy,^ and was not to
be lamented as a martyr. Others said, " He wished
to be king, and more than king ; let him be king, let
him be king ! ''' ^ Whatever horror was expressed, was
felt (as in the life-long remorse of Eobert Bruce for
the slaughter of the Bed Comyn in the church of Dum-
fries) not at the murder, but at the sacrilege.
At last, however, the cathedral was cleared, and the
1 Garnier, 74, 5. ^ Eitzstepheu, i. 30.5.
3 Herbert, 352. < Fitzstephen, i. 304.
5 Grim, 79, 80. ^ Benedict, 67.
1170.] THE DEAD BODY. Ill
gates shut ; ^ and for a time the body lay enth-ely
deserted. It was not till the night had quite closed
in, that Osbert, the chamberlain^ of the Archbishop,
entering with a light, found the corpse lying on its
face,^ the scalp hanging by a piece of skin : he cut off
a piece of his shirt to bind up the frightful gash. The
doors of the cathedral were again opened, and the
monks returned to the spot. Then, for the first time,
they ventured to give way to their grief, and a loud
lamentation resounded through the stillness of the
night. When they turned the body with its face
upwards, all were struck by the calmness and beauty
of the countenance : a smile still seemed to play on
the features, the color on the cheeks was fresh, and
the eyes were closed as if in sleep.* The top of the
head, wound round with Osbert's shirt, was bathed in
Idood, but the face was marked only by one faint streak
that crossed the nose from the right temple to the left
cheek.^ Underneath the body they found the axe
which Fitzurse had thrown down, and a small iron
hammer, brought apparently to force open the door ;
close by were lying the two fragments of Le Bret's
broken sword, and the Archbishop's cap, which had
been struck off in the beginning of the fray. All these
they carefully preserved. The blood, which with the
brains was scattered over the pavement, they collected
and placed in vessels ; and as the enthusiasm of the
hour increased, the bystanders, wlio already began to
1 Eoger, 169. 2 Fitzstephen, i. 305.
3 Grandison, iv. 1.
* Will. Cant., 33. The same appearances are described on the
subsequent morning, in Herbert, 3.58 ; Grandison, c. 9.
5 Benedict, 68; or (as Robert of Gloucester states it), "from the
left half of his forehead to the left half of his chin." Bv this mark
the subsequent apparitions of Becket Avere often recognized.
112 DISCOVERY OF THE HAIRCLOTH [1170.
esteem him a martyr, cut off pieces of their clothes
to dip in the blood, and anointed their eyes with it.
The cloak and outer pelisse, which were rich with san-
guinary stains, were given to the poor, — a proof of the
imperfect apprehension as yet entertained of the value
of these relics, which a few years afterwards would
have been literally worth their weight in gold, and
which were now sold for some trifling sum.^
After tying up the head with clean linen, and fasten-
ing the cap over it, they placed the body on a bier, and
carried it up the successive flights of steps which led
from the transept through the choir — " the glorious
choir," as it was called, " of Conrad " — to the high
altar in front of which they laid it down. The night
was now far advanced, but the choir was usually
lighted — and probably, therefore, on this great occa-
sion — by a chandelier with twenty-four wax tapers.
Vessels were placed underneath the body to catch any
drops of blood that might fan,^ and the monks sat
around weeping.^ The aged Eobert, Canon of Merton,
the earliest friend and instructor of Becket, and one of
the three who had remained with him to the last, con-
soled them by a narration of the austere life of the
martyred prelate, which hitherto had been known only
to himself, as the confessor of the Primate, and to
Brun the valet.* In proof of it he thrust his hand
under the garments, and showed the monk's habit and
haircloth shirt, which he wore next to his skin. This
was the one thing wanted to raise the enthusiasm of
the bystanders to the highest pitch. Up to that mo-
ment there had been a jealousy of the elevation of the
gay chancellor to the archbishopric of Canterbury.
1 Benedict, 68. - Benedict, 69.
3 Roger, 168. * Fitzstephen, i. 308.
1170.] DISCOVERY OF THE HAIRCLOTH. 113
The primacy involved the abbacy of the cathedral mon-
astery ; and the primates therefore had been, with two
exceptions, always chosen from some monastic society.
The fate of these two had, we are told, weighed heavily
on PJecket's mind. One was Stigand, the last Saxon
Archbishop, who ended his life in a dungeon, after the
Conquest ; the other was Elsey, who had been appointed
in opposition to Dunstan, and who after having tri-
umphed over his predecessor Odo by dancing on his
grave was overtaken by a violent snow storm in pass-
ing the Alps, and in spite of the attempts to resuscitate
him by plunging his feet in the bowels of his horse,
was miserably frozen to death. Becket himself, it was
believed, had immediately after his consecration re-
ceived, from a mysterious ^ apparition, an awful warn-
ing against appearing in the choir of the cathedral
in his secular dress as chancellor. It now for the first
time appeared that, though not formerly a monk, he
had virtually become one by his secret austerities.
The transport of the fraternity, on finding that he had
been one of themselves, was beyond all bounds. They
burst at once into thanksgivings, which resounded
through the choir ; fell on their knees ; kissed the
hands and feet of the corpse, and called him by the
name of " Saint Thomas," ^ by which, from that time
forward, he was so long known to the European world.
At the sound of the shout of joy there was a general
rush to the choir, to see the saint in sackcloth who had
hitherto been known as the chancellor in purple and
fine linen.^ A new enthusiasm was kindled by the
1 Grim, 16. Another version, current after his death, represented
him as having secretly assumed the monastic dress on the day of his
consecration. (Ant. Cant., vii. 213.)
2 Fitzstephen, i. 308.
8 Ibid. ; Gervase's Chronicle, 1416.
114 THE AURORA BOREALIS. [1170.
spectacle. Arnold, a monk, who was goldsmith to the
monastery, was sent back, with others, to the transept
to collect in a basin any vestiges of the blood and
brains, now become so precious ; and benches were
placed across the spot, to prevent its being desecrated
by the footsteps of the crowd.^ This perhaps was the
moment when the great ardor of the citizens first began
for washing their hands and eyes with tlie blood. One
instance of its application gave rise to a practice which
became the distinguishing characteristic of all the sub-
sequent pilgrimages to the shrine. A citizen of Canter-
bury dipped a corner of his shirt in the blood, went
home, and gave it, mixed in water, to his wife, who was
paralytic, and who was said to have been cured. This
suggested the notion of mixing the blood with water,
which, endlessly diluted, was kept in innumerable vials,
to be distributed to the pilgrims ; ^ and thus, as the
palm ^ was a sign of a pilgrimage to Jerusalem, and a
scallop-shell of the pilgrimage to Compostela, so a
leaden vial or bottle suspended from the neck became
the mark of a pilgrimage to Canterbury.
[Dec. 30.] Thus passed the night ; and it is not
surprising that in the red glare of an aurora borealis,*
which after the stormy evening, lighted up the mid-
night sky, the excited populace, like that at Piome
after the murder of Eossi, should fancy that they saw
the blood of the martyr go up to heaven ; or that, as
the wax lights sank down in the cathedral, and the
first streaks of the gray winter morning broke through
the stained windows of Conrad's choir, the monks who
sat round the corpse should imagine that the right arm
1 Fitzstephen, i. 308. 2 11,;^.^ 309.
3 Giiriiier, 78, 16; Anon. Lambeth, p. 134.
^ ritzstepheu, i. 304.
1170] UNWRAPPING OF THE CORPSE. 115
of the dead man was slowly raised in the sign of the
cross, as if to bless his faithful followers.^
Early in the next day a rumor or message came to
the monks that Eobert de Broc forbade them to bury
the body among the tombs of the Archbishops, and that
he threatened to drag it out, hang it on a gibbet, tear
it with horses, cut it to pieces,^ or throw it in some
pond or sink to be devoured by swine or birds of prey,
as a fit portion for the corpse of his master's enemy.
'■ Had Saint Peter so dealt with the king," he said, " by
the body of Saint Denys, if I had been there, I would
have driven my sword into his skull." ^ They accord-
ingly closed'* the doors, which apparently had remained
open through the night to admit the populace, and
determined to bury the corpse in the crypt. Thither
they carried it, and in that venerable vault proceeded
to their mournful task, assisted by the Abbot of Box-
ley and the Prior of Dover,^ who had come to advise
with the Archbishop about the vacancy of the Priory
at Canterbury.^ A discussion seems to have taken
place whether the body should be washed, according
to the usual custom, which ended in their removing
the clothes for the purpose. The mass of garments in
which he was wrapped is almost incredible, and appears
to have been worn chiefly for the sake of warmth and
in consequence of his naturally chilly temperament.'
1 Anon. Passio Tertia, 1 56 ; Hoveden, 299.
2 Fitzsteplien, i. 309 ; Anon. Lambeth, p. 134 ; Benedict, 69 ; Roger,
168; Herbert, 327 ; Grim, 81 ; Garnier, 76, 1.
3 Garnier, 76, 7.
* Gervase's Chronicle, 1417.
5 The Prior of Dover was no less a person than Richard, the Arch-
bishop's chaplain, and his successor in the primacy. (Matt. Paris, 127 ;
Vit. Abb. St. A., 16, 91.)
*> Fitzstephen, i. 309. "^ Garnier, 77, 1.
116 DISCOVERY OF THE YERxMIN. [1170.
First, there was the large brown mantle, with white
fringes of wool ; below this there was a white surplice,
and again below this a white fur garment of lamb's
wool. Next these, were two short woollen pelisses,
which were cut off with knives and given aw\ay ; and
under these the black cowled garment of the Benedic-
tine order 1 and the shirt ^ without sleeves or fringe, that
it might not be visible on the outside. The lowermost
covering was the haircloth, which had been made of
unusual roughness, and within the haircloth was a
warning letter^ he had received on the night of the
27th. The existence of the austere garb had been
pointed out on the previous night by Robert of ]\lerton ;
but as they proceeded in their task their admiration in-
creased. The haircloth encased the whole body, down
to the knees ; the hair drawers,'^ as well as the rest of
the dress, being covered on the outside with white linen
so as to escape observation ; and the whole so fastened
together as to admit of being readily taken off" for his
daily scourgings, of which yesterday's portion was still
apparent in the stripes on his body.^ The austerity of
hair drawers, close fitted as they were to the bare flesh,
had hitherto been unknown to English saints ; and the
marvel was increased by the sight ^ — to our notions
so revolting — of the innumerable vermin with which
the haircloth abounded ; boiling over with them, as
one account describes it, like water " in a simmering
caldron. At the dreadful sight all the enthusiasm of
1 Matt. Paris, 104.
2 Gamier, 77; Herbert, 330.
3 Fitzsteplien, i. 203; Roger, 169; Benedict, 20.
* Garnier, 77, 40.
5 Anon. Passio Tertia, 156.
6 Roger, 169 ; Fitzstephen, i. 309.
■^ Passio Quiuta, 161.
1170] BURIAL IN THE CRYPT. 117
the previous night revived with double ardor. They
looked at one another in silent wonder ; then exclaimed,
"See, see what a true monk he was, and we knew it
not ; " and burst into alternate fits of weeping and
laughter, between the sorrow of having lost such a head
and the joy of having found such a saint.^ The dis-
covery of so much mortification, combined with the more
prudential reasons for hastening the funeral, induced
them to abandon the thought of washing a corpse al-
ready, as it was thought, sufficiently sanctified, and they
at once proceeded to lay it out for burial.
Over the haircloth, linen shirt, monk's cowl, and
linen hose,^ they put first the dress in which he was
consecrated, and which he had himself desired to be
preserved,^ — namely, the alb, super-humeral, chris-
matic, mitre, stole, and maniple ; and over these, accord-
ing to the usual custom in archiepiscopal funerals, the
Archbishop's insignia, — namely, the tunic, dalmatic,
chasuble, the pall with its pins, the chalice, the gloves,
tlie rings, the sandals, and the pastoral staff,'* — all of
which, being probably kept in the treasury of the cathe-
dral, were accessible at the moment. The ring which
he actually wore at the time of his death, with a green
gem ^ set in it, was taken off. Thus arrayed, he was
laid by the monks in a new marble sarcophagus ^ which
stood in the ancient crypt,'^ at the back of the shrine
of the Virgin, between the altars of St. Augustine and
1 Roger, 169 ; Gamier, 77, .30.
2 Fitzstephen; Benedict, 70 ; Matt. Paris, 124.
3 Fitzstephen, i. 309. * Ibid.
^ This, with a knife and various portions of the dress,, were pre-
served in the treasury of Glastonbury. (John of Glastonbury, ed.
Hearn, p. 28.)
^ Grim, 82; Benedict, 70; Gervase's Chronicle, 1417.
" Benedict, 70; Diceto (Addit. ad Alan.), 377 ; Matt. Paris, 124.
118 EE-CONSECRATION OF THE CATHEDRAL. [1171.
St. John the Baptist,^ — the first Archbishop, as it
was observed, and the bold opponent of a wicked king.
The remains of the blood and brains were placed out-
side the tomb, and the doors of the crypt closed against
all entrance.^ No Mass was said over the Archbish-
op's grave ;^ for from the moment that armed men had
entered, the church was supposed to have been dese-
crated ; the pavement of the cathedral * was taken up ;
the bells ceased to ring ; the walls were divested of
their hangings ; the crucifixes were veiled ; the altars
stripped, as in Passion Week ; and the services were
conducted without chanting^ in the chapter-house.
This desolation continued till the next year, when Odo
the Prior, with the monks, took advantage of the arrival
of the Papal legates, who came to make full inquiry
into the murder, and requested their influence with the
bishops to procure a re-consecration. The task was
intrusted ^ to the P)isliops of Exeter and Chester ; and
on the 21st of December, the Feast of Saint Thomas
the Apostle, 1171 (the day of Saint Thomas of Canter-
bury was not yet authorized), Bartholomew, Bishop of
Exeter, again celebrated Mass, and preached a sermon on
the text, " For the multitude of the sorrows that I had
in my heart, thy comforts have refreshed my soul." "^
1 Fitzstephen, i. 309; Grandison, c. 9 ; Gervase, Acta Pont., 1673
(Gervase was present) ; Alan. .339 ; Matt. Paris, 125 ; Gamier, 75. The
arrangements of this part of the crypt were altered within the next fifty
years; bnt the spot is still ascertainable, behind the " Chapel of Our
Lady Undercroft," and underneath what is now the Trinity Chapel.
2 Gervase's Chronicle, 1417.
3 Fitzstephen, i. 310 ; Matt. Paris, 125 ; Diceto, 338.
•1 Diceto (558) speaks of the dirt of the pavement from the crowd
who trod it with dusty and muddy feet. ]\Iatt. Paris, 126.
5 Gervase's Chronicle, 1417.
'' Gervase, 1421. Chester then was the seat of the See of Lichfield.
'' Matt. Paris, 125. Bartholomew's tomb may be seen in the Lady
Chapel of Exeter Cathedral.
1173.] CANONIZATION. 119
Within three years the popular enthusiasm was con-
firmed by the highest authority of the Church. The
Archbishop of York had, some time after the murder,
ventured to declare that Becket had perished, like Pha-
raoh, in his pride, and the Government had endeavored
to suppress the miracles. But the Papal Court, vacil-
lating, and often unfriendly in his lifetime, now lent
itself to confer the highest honors on his martyrdom. ^
On the very day of the murder, some of the Canter-
bury monks had embarked to convey their own version
of it to the Pope.^ In 1172 legates were sent by Alex-
ander III. to investigate the alleged miracles, and they
carried back to Rome the tunic stained with blood, and
a piece of the pavement on which the brains were
scattered, — relics which were religiously deposited in
the Basilica of Sta. Maria Maggiore.^ In 1173 a
Council was called at Westminster to hear letters read
from the Pope, authorizing the invocation of the martyr
as a saint. All the bishops who had opposed him were
present, and after begging pardon for their offence, ex-
pressed their acquiescence in the decision of the Pope.
In the course of the same year, on Ash Wednesday,
the 21st of February,* he was regularly canonized, and
the 29th of December was set apart as the Feast of
Saint Thomas of Canterbury. His sister Mary was ap-
pointed Abbess of Barking.'^
1 Milman's Latin Christianity, iii. 532.
2 Ant. Cant., vii. 216.
3 Baronius, xix. 396. A fragment of the tunic, and small blue
bags said to contain portions of the brain, are still shown in the reli-
quary of this church.
* Florence of Worcester, 153.
5 Matt. Paris, 126. At this council took place, between Eoger of
York and Richard of Canterbury, the scene already mentioned (p.
72). Roger nearly lost his life under the sticks and fists of the oppo-
site ])arty, who shouted out, as he rose from the ground with crushed
120 ESCAPE OF THE MURDERERS. [1170.
A wooden altar, which remained unchanged through
the subsequent alterations and increased magnificence
of the cathedral, was erected on the site of the murder,
in front of the ancient stone wall of St. Benedict's
Chapel. It was this which gave rise to the mistaken
tradition, repeated in books, in pictures, and in sculp-
tures, that the Primate was slain whilst praying at the
altar.^ The crypt in which the body had been lain so
hastily and secretly became the most sacred spot in the
church, and, even after the " translation " of the relics
in 1220, continued to be known down to the time of
the Eeformation as '•' Becket's Tomb." ^ The subse-
quent history of those sacred spots must be reserved
for a separate consideration.
It remains for us now to follow the fate of the mur-
derers. [1170. Dec. 30.] On the night of the deed
the four knights rode to Salt wood, leaving Eobert de
Broc in possession of the palace, whence, as we have
seen, he brought or sent the threatening message to
the monks on the morning of the 30th. They vaunted
their deeds to each other, and it was then that Tracy
claimed the glory of having wounded John of Salis-
bury. [Dec. 31.] The next day they rode forty
miles by the sea-coast to Soutli-Malling, an archiepis-
copal manor near Lewes. On entering the house, they
mitre and torn cope, " Away, away, traitor of Saint Thomas ! thy hands
still reek with his blood!" (Anglia Sacra, i. 72 ; Gervase, 1433).
1 The gradual growth of the story is curious. (1) The post-
humous altar of the martyrdom is represented as standing there at
the time of his death. (2) This altar is next confounded with the
altar within the Chapel of St. Benedict. (.3) This altar is again trans-
formed into the High Altar; and (4) In these successive changes the
furious altercation is converted into an assault on a meek, unprepared
worshipper, kneeling before the altar.
- See Gough's Sepulchral Monuments, i. 26.
The Crypt.
1171.] LEGEND OF THEIR DEATHS. 121
threw off their arms and trappings on the large dining-
table which stood in the hall, and after supper gathered
round the blazing hearth ; suddenly the table started
back, and threw its burden on the ground. The attend-
ants, roused by the crash, rushed in with lights and
replaced the arms. But soon a second still louder
crash was heard, and the various articles were thrown
still farther off. Soldiers and servants with torches
searched in vain under the solid table to find the cause
of its convulsions, till one of the conscience-stricken
knights suggested that it was indignantly refusing to
bear the sacrilegious burden of their arms. So ran the
popular story ; and as late as the fourteenth century it
was still shown in the same place, — the earliest and
most memorable instance of a " rapping," " leaping,"
and " turning table." ^ From South-Mailing they pro-
ceeded to Knaresborough Castle, a royal fortress then
in the possession of Hugh de Moreville, where they
remained for a year.^ The local tradition still points
out the hall where they fled for refuge, and the vaulted
prison where they were confined after their capture.
From this moment they disappear for a time in the
black cloud of legend with which the monastic histori-
ans have enveloped their memory. Dogs, it was said,
refused to eat the crumbs that fell from their table.^
One of them in a fit of madness killed his own son.*
Sent by the king to Scotland, they were driven back
by the Scottish Court to England, and but for the ter-
ror of Henry's name, would have been hanged on
1 Grandison, iv. 1. " Mocstratur ibidem ipsa tabula in memoriam
miraculi couservata." See also Giraldus, iii Whartou's Anglia Sa-
cra, 425.
2 Brompton, 1064; Diceto, 557.
3 Bromptou, 1064 ; Hoveden, 299.
* Tassio Tertia; Giles, ii. 157.
122 LEGEND OF THEIR DEATHS. [1171.
gibbets.^ Struck with remorse, they went to Home to
receive the sentence of Pope Alexander III., and by
him were sent to expiate their sins by a miUtary ser-
vice of fourteen years ^ in the Holy Land. Moreville,
Fitzurse, and Brito, — so the story continues, — after
three years' fighting, died, and were buried, according
to some accounts, in front of the Church of the Holy
Sepulchre, or of the Templars, at Jerusalem ; according
to others, in front of the " Church of the Black Moun-
tain," 3 with an inscription on their graves, —
" Hie jaceut miseri qui martyrisaveruut
Beatum Thomain Archiepiscopum Cantuariensera."
Tracy alone, it was said, was never able to accom-
plish his vow. The crime of having struck the first
blow ^ was avenged by the winds of heaven, which al-
ways drove him back. According to one story, he
never left England. According to another, and, as we
shall see, more correct version, he reached the coast of
Calabria, and was then seized at Cosenza with a dread-
ful disorder, which caused him to tear his flesh from
his bones with his own hands, calling, " JMercy, Saint
Thomas!" and there he died miserably, after having
made his confession to the bishop of the place. His
1 Ant. Cant., vii. 218.
2 Ibid., 219.
3 Barouius, xix. 399. The legend hardly aims at probahilities.
The "Church of the Black Mountain" may possibly be a mountain
so called in Lansuedoc, near the Abbey of St. Papoul. The front of
the Church of the Holy Sepulchre is, and always must have been, a
square of public resort to all the pilgrims of the world, where no tombs
either of murderer or saint could have ever been placed. The Church
of the Templars was "the Mosque of the Rock," and the front was the
sacred platform of the sanctuary, — a less impossible place, but still
very improbable. Nothing of the kind now exists on either spot.
■* "Primus percussor " — Baronius, xix. 399. See Robert of
Gloucester, 1301-1321 ; Fuller's Worthies, S.'j?.
1171.] LEGEND OF THEIR DEATHS. 123
fate was long remembered among his descendants in
Gloucestershire, and gave rise to the distich that —
" The Tracys
Have always the wind in their face.s."
Another version of the story, preserved in the tradi-
tions of Flanders, was as follows. Immediately after
the murder, they lost all sense of taste and smell. The
Pope ordered them to wander through the world, never
sleeping two nights in the same place, till both senses
were recovered. In their travels they arrived at Co-
logne ; and when wine was poured out for them in the
inn, they perceived its taste (sniacke) ; it seemed to them
sweeter than honey, and they cried out, " blessed
Cologne!" They went on to Mechlin; and as they
passed through the town, they met a woman, carrying a
basket of newly baked bread, — they "found the smell"
(rueck) of it, and cried, " holy Mechlin ! " Great were
the benefits heaped by the Pope on these two towns,
when he heard of it. The brothers (so they are styled
in the Mechlin tradition) built huts for themselves
under the walls of the Church of St. Paimold, the pa-
tron saint of Mechlin, and died there. Over their grave,
written on the outer wall of the circular Chapel of St.
Eumold, now destroyed, was the following epitaph :
Rychardus Brito, nccnon Morialius Hugo; G-uilloelmus
Trad, Rcginaldus filius Ursi: Tliomain martyrium suh-
irc fcccre jprimatem}
Such is the legend. The real facts, so far as we can
ascertain them, are in some respects curiously at vari-
ance with it; in other respects, no less curiously con-
firm it. On the one hand the general fate of the mur-
derers was far less terrible than the popular tradition
1 Acta S. Rumoldi Sollerius, Antwerp, 1718 , commuuiuated by
the kindness of Mr. Kinfj.
124 THEIR REAL HISTORY.
delighted to believe. It would seem that, by a sin-
gular reciprocity, the principle for which Becket liad
contended — that priests should not be subjected to
secular courts — prevented the trial of a layman for
the murder of a priest by any other than by a clerical
tribunal.^ The consequence was, that the perpetrators
of what was thought the most heinous crime since the
Crucifixion could be visited with no other penalty than
excommunication. That they should have performed
a pilgrimage to Palestine is in itself not improbable ;
and one of them, as we shall see, certainly attempted
it. The Bishops of Exeter and Worcester wrote to
the Pope, urging the necessity of their punishment,
but adding that any one who undertook such an office
would be regarded as an enemy of God and of the
Church.^ But they seem before long to have re-
covered their position. The other enemies of Becket
even rose to high offices, — John of Oxford was made
within five years Bishop of Norwich ; and Geoffrey
Kiddell, Becket's " archdevil," within four years Bishop
of Ely [1173] ; and Pdchard of Ilchester, Archdeacon
of Poitiers within three years.
The murderers themselves, within the first two years
of the murder, were living at court on familiar terms
with the king, and constantly joined him in the
pleasures of the chase,^ or else hawking and hunting
in England.*
1 Such, at least, seems the most probable explanation. The fact of
the law is stated, as iu the text, by Speed (p. 511). The law was al-
tered in 117G (23 H. II.), — that is, seven years from the date of the
murder, at the time of the final settlement of the Constitutions of Clar-
endon, between Henry II. and the Papal Legate (Matt. Paris, 132), —
and from that time slayers of clergy were punished before the Grand
Justiciary in the presence of the Bishop.
2 Jolin of Salisbury's Letters (Giles, ii. 273).
3 Gervase, 1422. ■* Lausdowue MS. (xVut. Cant., vii. 211).
MOREVILLE; FITZURSE. 125
Moreville,^ who had been Justice-Itinerant in the
counties of Northumberland and Cumberland at the
time of the murder, was discontinued from his office
the ensuing year ; but in the first year of King John
he is recorded as paying twenty-five marks and three
good palfreys for holding his court so long as Helwise
his wife should continue in a secular habit. He pro-
cured, about the same period, a charter for a fair and
market at Kirk Oswald, and died shortly afterwards,
leaving two daughters.^ The sword which he wore
during the murder is stated by Camden to have been
preserved in his time ; and is believed to be the one
still shown in the hall of Brayton Castle,^ between
Carlisle and Whitehaven. A cross near the Castle of
Egremont, which passed into his family, was dedicated
to Saint Thomas, and the spot where it stood is still
called St. Thomas's Cross. Fitzurse is said to have
gone over to Ireland, and there to have become the
ancestor of the M'Mahon family in the north of Ire-
land, — M'Mahon being the Celtic translation of Bear's
son.* On liis flight the estate which he held in the
Isle of Thanet, Barham or Berham Court, lapsed to
his kinsman Eobert of Berham, — Berham being, as it
would seem, the English, as M'Mahon was the Irish,
version of the name Fitzurse.^ His estate of Willeton,
in Somersetshire, he made over, — half to the knights
1 Toss's Judges, i. 279, 280.
2 Lysons's Cumberland, p. 127. Nichols's Pilgrimage of Erasmus,
p. 220. He must not be coufouuded with his namesake, the founder
of Dryburgh Abbey.
^ Now tlie property of Sir Wilt red Laws(»n, Bart., where I saw it
in 1856. The sword bears as an inscription, " Gott bewalir die auf-
richten Schotten." The word " bewahr " proves that the inscription
(whatever may be the date of the sword) cannot be older than the
sixteenth century.
* Fuller's Worthies. s Harris's Kent, 313.
126 BRET; riTZRANULPH; TRACY.
of St. John the year after the murder, probably in ex-
piation ; the other half to his brother Eobert, who built
the Chapel of Willeton. The descendants of the fam-
ily lingered for a long time in the neighborhood under
the same name, — corrupted into Fitzour, Fishour, and
Fisher.^ The family of Bret, or Brito, was carried on, as
we shall shortly see, through at least two generations of
female descendants. The village of Sanford, in Somer-
setshire, is still called, from the family, "Sanford Brcty^
Eobert Fitzranulph, who had followed the four
knights into the church, retired at that time from the
shrievalty of Nottingham and Derby, which he had
held during the six previous years, and is said to have
founded a priory of Beauchief in expiation of his
crime.^ But his son William succeeded to the office,
and was in places of trust about the court till the
reign of John> Eobert de Broc appears to have had
the custody of the Castle of Hagenett, or Agenet, in
East Anglia.^
The history of Tracy is the most remarkable of the
whole. Within four years from the murder he appears
as Justiciary of Normandy ; he was present at Falaise
in 1174, when William, King of Scotland, did homage
to Henry II., and in 1176 was succeeded in his office
by the Bishop of Winchester.*' This is the last au-
thentic notice of him. But his name appears long
subsequently in the somewhat contiicting traditions
of Gloucestershire and Devonshire, the two counties
where his chief estates lay. The local histories of the
1 rollinson's Somersetshire, iii. 487. ^ Ibid., 514.
^ The tradition is disputed, but without reason, iu Pegge's Beau-
chief Abbey, p- 34.
4 Toss's Judges, i. 202.
5 Rrompton, 1089 ; Gervase, 1426.
° JS'iehuls's Pilgrimage of Erasmus, p. 221
TRACY. 127
former endeavor to identify him in the wars of Jolm
and of Henry III., as late as 1216 and 1222. But
even without cutting short his career by any untimely
end, such longevity as this would ascribe to him —
bringing him to a good old age of ninety — makes it
probable that he has been confounded with his son
or grandson.^ There can be little doubt, however,
that his family still continues in Gloucestershire. His
daughter married Sir Gervase de Courtenay ; and it is
apparently from their son, Oliver de Tracy, who took
the name of his mother, that the present Lord Wemyss
and Lord Sudley are both descended. The pedigree, in
fact, contrary to all received opinions on the suljject of
judgments on sacrilege, "exhibits a very singular in-
stance of an estate descending for upwards of seven
hundred years in the male line of the same family." ^
The Devonshire story is more romantic, and probably
contains more both of truth and of fable. There are
two points on the coast of Xorth Devon to which local
tradition has attached his name. One is a huge rent
or cavern called " Crookhorn " (from a crooked crag
now washed away) in the dark rocks immediately west
of Ilfracombe, which is left dry at low water, but filled
by the tide except for three months in the year. At
one period within those three months, " Sir William
Tracy," according to the story of the Ilfracombe boat-
men, " hid himself for a fortnight immediately after
the murder, and was fed by his daughter." The other
and more remarkable spot is Morthoe, a village situ-
ated a few miles farther west on the same coast, — " the
height or hold of Morte." In the south transept of
the parish church of this village, dedicated to Saint
1 Eudder's Gloucestershire, 776.
2 Ibid., 770; Britton's Toddington.
123 TRACY.
Mary Magdalene, is a tomb, for which the transept has
evidently been built. On the black marble covering,
which lies on a freestone base, is an inscription closing
with the name of " Sir William Tracy, • — The Lord
have mercy on his soul." This tomb was long sup-
posed, and is still believed by the inhabitants of the
village, to contain the remains of the murderer, who
is further stated to have founded the church. The fe-
male figures sculptured on the tomb — namely, Saint
Catherine and Saint Mary Magdalene — are represented
as his wife and daughter. That this story is fabulous
has now been clearly proved by documentary evidence,
as well as by the appearance of the architecture and
the style of the inscription. The present edifice is of
the reign of Henry VII. The tomb and transept are
of the reign of Edward 11. " Sir ^ William Tracy "
was the rector of the parish, who died and left this
chantry in 1322 ; and the figure carved on the tomb
represents him in his sacerdotal vestments, with the
chalice in his hand. But although there is thus no
proof that the murderer was buried in the church, and
although it is possible that the whole story may have
arisen from the mistake concerning this monument,
there is still no reason to doubt that in this neighbor-
hood " he lived a private life, when wind and weather
turned against him." ^ William of Worcester states
that he retired to the western parts of England ; and
this statement is confirmed by tlie well-attested fact of
1 Ecclesiastical Antiquities of Devonshire, ii. 82. The title "Sir"
■was the common designation of parish priests. I have here to express
my obligations to the kindness of the Rev. Charles Crumpe, wlio has
devoted much labor to prove that the lid of the tomb, though not the
tomb itself, may have belonged to the grave of the murderer. For
the reasons above given, I am unable to concur with him.
2 Polhvliele's Devonshire, i. 480.
TRACY. 129
his confession to Bartholomew, Bishop of Exeter. The
property belonged to the family, and there is an old
farmhouse, close to the sea-shore, still called Woolla-
combe Tracy, which is said to mark the spot where he
lived in banishment. Beneath it, enclosed within black
jagged headlands, extends Morte Bay. Across the bay
stretch the Woollacombe Sands, remarkable as being the
only sands along the north coast, and as presenting a
pure and driven expanse for some miles. Here, so runs
the legend, he was banished " to make bundles of the
sand, and binds [wisps] of the same." ^
Besides these floating traditions there are what may
be called two standing monuments of his connection
with the murder. One is the Priory of Woodspring,
near the Bristol Channel, which was founded in 1210
by William de Courtenay, probably his grandson, in
honor of the Holy Trinity, the Blessed Virgin, and
Saint Thomas of Canterbury. To this priory lands
were bequeathed by Maud the daughter, and Alice the
granddaughter, of the third murderer, Bret or Brito, in
the hope, expressed by Alice, that the intercession of
the glorious martyr might never be wanting to her and
her children.^ Its ruins still remain under the long
promontory called, from it, " St. Thomas's Head." In
the old church of Kewstoke, about three miles from
"Woodspring, during some repairs in 1852, a wooden
cup, much decayed, was discovered in a hollow in the
back of a statue of the Virgin fixed against the north
wall of the choir. The cup contained a substance
which was decided to be the dried residuum of blood.
From the connection of the priory with the murderers
^ This I heard from the people on the spot. It is of course a mere
appropriation of a wide-spread story, here suggested by the locality.
- Collinson's Somersetshire, iii. 487, 543.
9
130 TRACY.
of Becket, and from the fact that the seal of the Prior
contained a cup or chalice as part of its device, there
can be little doubt that this ancient cup was thus pre-
served at the time of the Dissolution, as a valuable
relic, and that the blood which it contained was that of
the murdered Primate.^
The other memorial of Tracy is still more curious,
as partially confirming and certainly illustrating the
legendary account which has been given above of his
adventure in Calabria. In the archives of Canterbury
Cathedral a deed exists by which " William de Tracy,
for the love of God, and the salvation of his own soul
and his ancestors, and for the love of the blessed
Thomas Archbishop and Martyr," makes over to the
Chapter of Canterbury the Manor of Daccombe, for the
clothing and support of a monk to celebrate Masses
for the souls of the living and the dead. The deed
is without date, and it might possibly, therefore, have
been ascribed to a descendant of Tracy, and not to the
murderer himself. But its date is fixed by the confir-
mation of Henry, attested as that confirmation is by
" Eichard, elect of Winchester," and " Pobert, elect of
Hereford," to the year 1174 (the only year when
Henry's presence in England coincided with such a
conjunction in the two sees).^ The manor of Dac-
combe, or Dockham, in Devonshire, is still held un-
der the Chapter of Canterbury, and is thus a present
witness of the remorse with which Tracy humbly
begged that, on the scene of his deed of blood, ]\Iasses
1 Journal of the Archaeological Institute, vi. 400. The cup, or
rather fragment of tlie cup, is in the niuseixm at Taunton.
- This deed (which is given in the Appendix to " Becket's Slirine ")
is slightly mentioned by Lord Lyttelton in his " History of Henry II.,"
iv. 284 ; but he appears not to have seen it, and is ignorant of the cir-
cumstances which iucoutestably fix the date.
PICTORIAL REPRESENTATIONS OF THE MURDER. 131
might be offered, not for himself individually (this, per-
haps, could hardly have been granted), but as in-
cluded in the general category of " the living and the
dead." But, further, this deed is found in company
with another document, by which it appears that one
William Thaun, hcforc his cle'paTtiire to the Holy Land
with his master, made his wife swear to render up to
the Blessed Thomas and the monks of Canterbury all
his lands, given to him by his lord, William de Tracy.
He died on his journey, his widow married again, and
her second husband prevented her fulfilment of her
oath ; she, however, survived him, and the lands were
duly rendered up. From this statement we learn that
Tracy really did attempt, if not fulfil, a journey to the
Holy Land. But the attestation of the bequest of
Tracy himself enables us to identify the story still
further. One of the witnesses is the Abbot of St.
Euphemia ; and there can be little doubt that this
Abbey of St. Euphemia was the celebrated convent of
that name in Calabria, not twenty miles from Cosenza,
the very spot where the detention, though not the
death, of Tracy is thus, as it would appear, justly
placed by the old story.
The figures of the murderers may be seen in the rep-
resentations of the martyrdom, which on walls or in
painted windows or in ancient frescos have survived
the attempted extermination of all the monuments of
the traitor Becket by King Henry VIII. Sometimes
three, sometimes four, are given, but always so far
faithful to history that Moreville is stationed aloof
from the massacre. Two vestiges of such representa-
tion still remain in Canterbury Cathedral. One is a
painting on a board, now greatly defaced, at the head
of the tomb of King Henry IV. It is engraved, though
132 PICTORIAL REPRESENTATIONS OF THE MURDER.
not quite correctly, in Carter's " Ancient Sculpture and
Painting ; " and through the help of the engraving, the
principal figures can still be dimly discerned.^ There
is the common mistake of making the Archbishop kneel
at the altar, and of representing Grim, with his blood-
stained arm, as the bearer of the cross. The knights
are carefully distinguished from one another. Bret,
with boars' heads embroidered on his surcoat, is in the
act of striking. Tracy appears to have already dealt a
blow ; and the bloody stains are visible on his sword, to
mark the " primus ijcrcussor." Fitzurse, with bears on
his coat, is " stirring the brains " of his victim, holding
his sword with both hands perpendicularly, thus taking
the part sometimes ascribed to him, though really be-
longing to Mauclerc. Moreville, distinguished by iieurs-
de-lis, stands apart. All of them have beards of the
style of Henry IV. On the ground lies the bloody
scalp, or cap, it is difficult to determine which.^ There
1 A correct copy has now been made by Mr. George Austin, of
Canterbury.
2 A much more faithful representation is given in an illuminated
Psalter in the British Museum (Harl. 1502), undoubtedly of the pe-
riod, and, as Becket is depicted without the nimbus, probably soon
after, if not before, the canonization. He is represented in white
drapery, falling towards the altar. His gray cap is dropping to the
ground. Fitzurse and Tracy are rightly given with coats of mail up
to their eyes. Moreville is without helmet or armor ; Fitzurse is
wounding Grim. A light hangs from the roof. The palace (appar-
ently), with the town wall, is seen in the distance. There is another
illumination in the same Psalter, representing the burial. In the
"Journal of the Archaeological Association," April, 1854, there is a full
account of a fresco in St. John's Church, Winchester ; in the " Archte-
ologia " (vol. ix.), of one at Brereton in Cheshire. The widest deviation
from historical truth is to be found in the modern altar-piece of the
Church of St. Thomas, which forms the chapel of the English College
at Rome. The saint is represented in a monastic garb, on his knees
before the altar of a Roman Basilica; and behind him are the three
knights, in complete classical costume, brandishing daggers like those
of the assassins of Caisar. The nearest likeness of the event is in the
THE KING'S REMORSE. 133
is, besides, a sculpture over the south porch, where
Erasmus states that he saw the figures of " the three
murderers," with their names of " Tusci, Fusci, and
Berri," ^ underneath. These figures have disappeared ;
and it is as difficult to imagine where they could have
stood, as it is to explain the origin of the names they
bore ; but in the portion which remains, there is a rep-
resentation of an altar surmounted by a crucifix, placed
between the figures of Saint John and the Virgin, and
marked as the altar of the martyrdom, — " Altare ad
punctum ensis," — by sculptured fragments^ of a sword
which lie at its foot.
[1170.] Thus far have we traced the history of the
murderers, but the great expiation still remained. The
king had gone from Bur to Argenton, a town situated
on the high table-land of southern Normandy. The
night before the news arrived (so ran the story •^) an
aged inhabitant of Argenton was startled in his sleep
by a scream rising as if from the ground, and form-
ing itself into these portentous words : " Behold, my
blood cries from the earth more loudly than the blood
of righteous Abel, who was killed at the beginning of
the world." The old man on the following day was
discussing with his friend what this could mean, when
choir of Sens Cathedral. A striking modern picture of the scene,
just before the onslau_2jht of the murderers, by the English artist Mr.
Cross (see Eraser's Magazine, June, 1861), is now hung in the north
aisle of the cathedral.
1 " Berri " is probal>ly a mistake for Bear's Son, Fitzurse's (Fusci's)
English name. The same names occur in Hentzner's Travels in Eng-
land, 1598: "In vestibulo templi quod est ad austrum in saxum incisi
sunt tres armati . . . additis his cognominibus, Tusci, Fusci, Berri."
- That these are representations of the broken sword is confirmed
by the exactly similar representation in the seal of the Abbey of
Aberbrothock.
3 Benedict, de Mirac. S. Thomas, i. 3.
134 THE KING'S REMORSE.
suddenly the tidings arrived that Becket had been slain
at Canterbury. When the king heard it, he instantly
shut himself up for three days, refused all food ^ except
milk of almonds, rolled himself in sackcloth and ashes,
vented his grief in frantic lamentations, and called God
to witness that he was in no way responsible for the
Archbishop's death, unless that he loved him too little.^
He continued in this solitude for five weeks, neitlier
riding nor transacting public business, but exclaiming
again and again, "Alas ! alas that it ever happened!"^
The French King, the Archbishop of Sens, and otli-
ers had meanwhile written to the Pope, denouncing
Henry in the strongest language as the murderer, and
calling for vengeance upon his head;^ and there was
a fear that this vengeance would take the terrible form
of a public excommunication of the king and an inter-
dict of the kingdom. Henry, as soon as he was roused
from his retirement, sent off as envoys to Eome the
Archbishop of Eouen, the Bishop of Worcester, and
others of his courtiers, to avert the dreaded penalties
by announcing his submission. The Archbishop of
Kouen returned on account of illness ; and Alexander
III., who occupied the Papal See, and who after long
struggles with his rival had at last got back to Rome,
refused to receive the rest. He was, in fact, in the
eyes of Christendom, not wholly guiltless himself, in
consequence of the lukewarmness with which he had
fought Becket's fights; and it was believed that he,
like the king, had shut himself up on hearing the news
as much from remorse as from grief. At last, by a bribe
^ Vita Qnadripartita, p. 143. " Milk of almonds " is used iu Russia
during fasts instead of common milk.
2 Matt. Paris, 125.
5 Vita Qnadripartita, p. 146 * Brompton, 1064.
THE KING'S REMORSE. 135
of five hundred marks, ^ an interview was effected on
the heights of ancient Tusculum, — not yet superseded
by the modern Frascati. Two cardinals — Theodore (or
Theodwin), Bishop of Portus, and Albert, Chancellor of
the Holy See — were sent to Normandy to receive the
royal penitent's submission,^ and an excommunication
was pronounced against the murderers on Maunday
Thursday,^ which is still the usual day for the delivery
of papal maledictions. The worst of the threatened
evils — excommunication and interdict — were thus
avoided ; but Henry still felt so insecure that he
crossed over to England, ordered all the ports to be
strictly guarded to prevent the admission of the fatal
document, and refused to see any one who was the
bearer of letters.* It was during this short stay that
he visited for the last time the old Bishop of Winches-
ter,^ Henry of Blois, brother of King Stephen, well
known as the founder of the beautiful hospital of St
Cross, when the dying old man added his solemn warn-
ings to those which were resounding from every quar-
ter with regard to the deed of blood. From England
Henry crossed St. George's Channel to his new con-
quests in Ireland; and it was on his return from the
expedition that the first public expression of his peni-
tence was made in Normandy.
He repaired to his castle of Gorram,^ now Goron, on
the banks of the Colmont, where he first met the Pope's
1 Gervase, 1418. 2 Brompton, 1068.
3 Gervase, 1418. « Diceto, 556.
5 Gervase, 1419.
6 Ep. St. Thomte in MSS. Cott. Claud., h. ii. f. 350, ep. 94; also
preserved in the " Vita Quadripartita," edited by Lupus at Brussels
pp. 146, 147, 871, where, however, the epistle is numbered 88 from a
Vatican manuscript.
The castle in question was procured by Henry I. from Geoffrey,
third duke of Mayenne, and was well known for its deer-preserves. To
136 PENANCE AT GORRAM AND AVRANCHES. [1172.
Legates, and exchanged the kiss of charity with them.
This was on the 16th of May, the Tuesday before the
Eogation days ; the next day he went on to Savigny,
where they were joined by the Archbishop of Eouen
and many bishops and noblemen ; and finally proceeded
to the Council, which was to be held under the aus-
pices of the Legate at Avranches.
The great Norman cathedral of that beautiful city
stood on what was perhaps the finest situation of any
cathedral in Christendom, — on the brow of the high
ridge which sustains the town of Avranches, and look-
ing over the wide bay, in the centre of which stands
the sanctuary of Norman chivalry and superstition, the
majestic rock of St. Michael, crowned with its for-
tress and chapel. Of this vast cathedral, one granite
pillar alone has survived the neglect that followed the
French Revolution, and that pillar marks the spot
where Henry performed his first penance for the mur-
der of Recket. It bears an inscription with these
words : " Sur cette pierre, ici, a la porte de la cathd-
drale d' Avranches, apres le meurtre de Thomas Becket,
Archeveque de Cantorbdry, Henri IL, Roi dAngleterre
et Due de Normandie, re^ut a genoux, des Idgats du
Pape, I'absolution apostolique, le Dimanche, xxi Mai.
MCLXXII." 1
the ecclesiastical historian of the nineteenth century the town near
which it is situated will possess a curious interest, as the original
seat of the family of Gorram, or Gorham, which after giving birth
to Geoffrey the Abbot of St. Allians and Nicholas the theologian, each
famous in his day, has become known in our generation through the
celebrated Gorham controversy, which in 1850 invested for a time
with an almost European interest the name of the late George Corne-
lius Gorham, vicar of Bramford Speke. To his courtesy and profound
antiquarian knowledge I am indebted for the above references.
1 So the inscription stands as I saw it in 1874. But as it appeared
when I first saw it, in 1851, and also in old guide-books of Normandy,
1172.] PENANCE AT AVRANCHES. 137
The council was held in the Church, on the Friday
of the same week. On the following Sunday, being
Eogation Sunday, or that which precedes the Ascen-
sion, the king swore on the Gospels that he had not
ordered or wished the Archbishop's murder ; but that
as he could not put the assassins to death, and feared
that his fury had instigated them to the act, he was
ready on his part to make all satisfaction, — adding, of
himself, that he had not grieved so much for the death
of his father or his mother.^ He next swore adhesion
to the Pope, restitution of the property of the See of
Canterbury, and renunciation of the Constitutions of
Clarendon ; and further promised, if the Pope required,
to go a three years' crusade to Jerusalem or Spain, and
to support two hundred soldiers for the Templars.^ Af-
ter this he said aloud, " Behold, my Lords Legates, my
body is in your hands ; be assured that whatever you
order, whether to go to Jerusalem or to Eome or to
St. James [of Compostela], I am ready to obey." The
spectators, whose sympathy is usually with the sufferer
of the hour, were almost moved to tears.^ He was
thence led by the legates to the porch, where he knelt,
but was raised up, brought into the church, and recon-
it was " xxii Mai." Mr. Gorham pointed out to me at the time that
the 22d of May did not that year fall on a Sunday : —
"In A. D. 1171, Sunday feU on May 2.3d.
InA. D. 1172, " " " May 21st.
luA.D. 117.3, " " " May 20th.
The only years in the reign of Henry II. in which May 22d fell on a
Sunday were a. d. 115.'), 1160, 1166, 1177, 1183, 1188." There .seems
no reason to doubt the year 1172, which is fixed by the Cotton MS.
Life of Saint Thomas, nor the fact that it was in May ; not, as Ger-
vase (p. 422) states, on the 27th of September, misled perhaps, as Mr.
Gorham suggests, by some document subsequently signed by the
king.
1 Diceto, 557.
2 Alan., in Vita Quadripartita, p. 147. 3 Gervase, 1422.
138 THE KING AT BONNEVILLE. [1174.
ciled. The young Henry, at his father's suggestion, was
also present, and, placing his hand in that of Cardinal
Albert,^ promised to make good his father's oath. The
Archbishop of Tours was in attendance, that he might
certify the penance to the French king.
Two years passed again, and the fortunes of the king
grew darker and darker with the rebellion of his sons.
It was this which led to the final and greater pen-
ance at Canterbury. [1174.] He was conducting a
campaign against Prince Kichard in Poitou, when the
Bishop of Winchester arrived with the tidings that
England was in a state of general revolt. The Scots
had crossed the border, under their king ; Yorkshire
was in rebellion, under the standard of Mowbray ;
Norfolk, under Bigod ; the midland counties, under
Ferrers and Huntingdon ; and the Earl of Flanders
with Prince Henry was meditating an invasion of Eng-
land from Flanders. All these hostile movements were
further fomented and sustained by the 'revival of the
belief, not sufficiently dissipated by the penance at
Avranches, that the king had himself been privy to the
murder of the saint. In the winter after that event, a
terrible storm had raged through England, Ireland, and
France, and the popular imagination heard in the long
roll of thunder the blood of Saint Thomas roaring to
God for vengeance.^ The next year, as we have seen,
the saint had been canonized; and his fame as the
great miracle-worker of the time was increasing every
month. It was under these circumstances that on the
midsummer-day of the year 1174 the Bishop found the
king at Bonneville.^ So many messages had been daily
1 Alan., in Vita Qnadripartita, pp. 147, 148.
2 Matthew of Westminster, 2.50.
3 " The chroniclers have made a confusion between June and July ;
but July is right. " — Hoveden, 308.
1174.] HIS RIDE FROM SOUTHAMPTON. 139
de.spatched, and so much im])ortance was attached to
the character of the Uishop of Whichester, that the
Normans, on seeing his arrival, exclaimed, " The next
thing that the English will send over to fetch the king
will be the Tower of London itself." ^ Henry saw at
once the emergency. That very day, with the queens
Eleanor and Margaret, his son and daughter John and
Joan, and the princesses, wives of his other sons, he set
out for England. He embarked in spite of the threat-
ening weather and the ominous looks of the captain.
A tremendous gale sprang up ; and the king uttered a
public prayer on board the ship, that, " if his arrival in
England would be for good, it might be accomplished ;
if for evil, never."
The wind abated, and he arrived at Southampton
on Monday, the 8th of July. From that moment he
began to live on the penitential diet of bread and
water, and deferred all business till he had fulfilled
his vow. He rode to Canterbury with speed, avoiding
towns as much as possible, and on Friday, the 12th of
July, approached the sacred city, probably by a road of
which traces still remain, over the Surrey hills, and
which falls into what was then, as now, the London
road by the ancient village and hospital of Harbledown.
This hospital, or leper -house, now venerable with the
age of seven centuries, was then fresh from the hands
of its founder, Lantranc. Whether it had yet obtained
the relic of the saint — the upper leather of his shoe,
which Erasmus saw, and which it is said remained in
the almshouse almost down to our own day — does not
appear ; but he halted there, as was the wont of all
pilgrims, and made a gift of forty marks to the lit-
tle church. And now, as he climbed the steep road
1 Diceto, 573.
140 PENANCE IN THE CRYPT, [1174.
beyond the hospital and descended on the other side of
the hill, the first view of the cathedral burst upon him,
rising, not indeed in its present proportions, but still
with its three towers and vast front ; and he leaped off
his horse, and went on foot through a road turned into
puddles by the recent storms,^ to the outskirts of the
town. Here, at St. Dunstan's Church,^ he paused again,
entered the edifice with the prelates who were present,
stripped off his ordinary dress, and walked through the
streets in the guise of a penitent pilgrim, — barefoot,
and with no other covering than a woollen shirt, and a
cloak thrown over it to keep off rain.^
So, amidst a wondering crowd, — the rough stones of
the streets marked with the blood that started from
his feet, — he reached the cathedral. There he knelt,
as at Avranches, in the porch, then entered the church,
and went straight to the scene of the murder in the
north transept. Here he knelt again, and kissed the
sacred stone on which the Archbishop had fallen,
the prelates standing round to receive his confession.
Thence he was conducted to the crypt, where he again
knelt, and with groans and tears kissed the tomb and
remained long in prayer. At this stage of the solem-
nity Gilbert Foliot, Bishop of London, — the ancient
opponent and rival of Becket, — addressed the monks
and bystanders, announcing to them the king's peni-
tence for having by his rash words unwittingly occa-
sioned the perpetration of a crime of which he him-
self was innocent, and his intention of restoring the
rights and property of the church, and bestowing forty
marks yearly on the monastery to keep lamps burning
1 Trivet, 104; Robert of Mont S. Michel. (Appendix to Sigebert
in Perthes, vol. vi.)
^ Grim, 86. ^ Gamier, 78, 29. He was present.
I
,174.]
PENANCE IN THE CRYPT.
141
constantly at the martyr's tomb.^ The king ratified
all that the bishop had said, requested absolution, and
received a kiss of reconciliation from the prior. He
knelt again at the tomb, removed the rough cloak
which had been thrown over his shoulders, but still
THE CRTPT, CANTEKBURT CATHEDRAL.
retained the woollen shirt to hide the haircloth,^ which
was visible to near observation, next his skin, placed
his head and shoulders in the tomb, and there received
five strokes from each bishop and abbot who was
present, beginning with Foliot, who stood by w^ith the
" balai," or monastic rod, in his hand,^ and three from
1 Gamier, 80, 9.
2 Newburgh alone (1181) represents the penance as having taken
place in the chapter-house, doubtless as the usual place for discipline.
The part surrounding the tomb was superseded in the next generation
bj' the circular vault which now supports the Trinity Chapel. But
the architecture must have been like what is now seen in the western
portion of the crypt.
3 Grim, 86. "A lively representation of Henry's penance is to be
seen in Carter's Ancient Sculpture and Painting (p. 50). The king is
142 ABSOLUTION. [1174.
each of the eighty monks. Fully absolved, he resumed
his clothes, but was still left in the crypt, resting
against one of the rude Norman pillars,^ on the bare
ground, with bare feet^ still unwashed from the muddy
streets, and passed the whole night fasting. At early
matins he rose and went round the altars and shrines
of the upper church, then returned to the tomb, and
finally, after hearing Mass, drank of the Martyr's well,
and carried off one of the usual phials of Canterbury
pilgrims, containing water mixed with the blood, and
so rode to London.^
So deep a humiliation of so great a prince w^as un-
paralleled within the memory of that generation. The
submission of Theodosius to Ambrose, of Louis le De-
bonnaire at Soissons, of Otho III. at Eavenna, of Edgar
to Dunstan, of the Emperor Henry IV. to Gregory
A^ll., were only known as matters of history. It is
not surprising that the usual figure of speech by which
the chroniclers express it should be, — " the moun-
tains trembled at the presence of the Lord," — " the
mountain of Canterbury smoked before Him who
touches the hills and they smoke." * The auspicious
conseqiiences were supposed to be immediate. The
king had arrived in London on Sunday, and was so
represented as kneeling, crowned but almost naked, before the shrine.
Two great officei'S, one bearing the sword of State, stand behind him.
The monks in their black Benedictine robes are defiling round the
shrioe, each with a large rod in his hand approaching the bare shoul-
ders of the king. A good notion of this ceremony of the scourging is
conveyed by the elaborate formalities with which it was nominally,
and probably for the last time, exercised by Pope Julius II. and the
Cardinals on the Venetian Deputies in 1509." — Sketches of Venetian
Histori/, c. 16.
1 Garnier, 80, 29. 2 Diceto, 575.
3 See Note A. to the Essay on " Becket's Shrine."
4 Grim, 86.
1174.] COUNT RALPH OF GLANVILLE. 143
completely exhausted by the effects of the long day
and night at Canterbury, that he was seized with a
dangerous fever. On the following Thursday,^ at mid-
night, the guards were roused by a violent knocking at
the gates. The messenger, who announced that he
])rought good tidings, was reluctantly admitted into
the king's bedroom. The king, starting from his sleep,
said, "Who art thou?" "I am the servant of your
faithful Count Ralph of Glanville," was the answer,
"and I come to bring you good tidings." " Is our good
Ealph well ? " asked the king. " He is well," answered
the servant, " and he has taken your enemy, the King
of the Scots, prisoner at Richmond." The king was
thunderstruck ; the servant repeated his message, and
produced the letters confirming it.^ The king leaped
from his bed, and returned thanks to God and Saint
Thomas. The victory over William the Lion had taken
place on the very Saturday on which he had left Can-
terbury, after having made ^ his peace with the martyr.
On that same Saturday the fleet with which his son
had intended to invade England from Flanders* was
driven back. It was in the enthusiasm of this crisis
that Tracy, as it would seem, presented to the king
the bequest of his manor of Daccombe to the monks of
Canterbury, which accordingly received then and there,
at Westminster, the royal confirmation.^ Once more,
so far as we know, the penitent king and the penitent
knight met, in the December of that same year, when,
^ Gervase's Chronicle, 1427.
- Brompton, 1095. The effect of this story is heightened by Gau-
fridus Vosiensis (Script. Ker. Franc, 44.3), who speaks of the an-
nouncement as taking place in Canterbury Cathedral, after Mass was
finished.
3 Brompton, 1096. 4 Matt. Paris, 130.
5 See Appendix to " Becket's Shrine."
144 CONCLUSION.
ill the fortress of Falaise, the captured king of Scotland
did homage to his conqueror ; Tracy standhig, as of old,
by his master's side, but now in the high position of
Justiciary of Normandy. Nor did the association of
his capture with the Martyr's power pass away from
the mind of William the Lion. He, doubtless in recol-
lection of these scenes, reared on his return to Scotland
the stately abbey of Aberbrothock, to the memory of
Saint Thomas of Canterbury.
Thus ended this great tragedy. Its effects on the
constitution of the country and on the religious feeling
not only of England but of Europe, would open too large
a field. It is enough if, from the narrative we have
given, a clearer notion can be formed of that remark-
able event than is to be derived from the works either
of his professed apologists or professed opponents, — if
the scene can be more fully realized, the localities more
accurately identified, the man and his age more clearly
understood. If there be any who still regard Becket
as an ambitious and unprincipled traitor, plotting for
his own aggrandizement against the welfare of the mon-
archy, they will perhaps be induced, by the accounts
of his last moments, to grant to him the honor, if not
of a martyr, at least of an honest and courageous man,
and to believe that such restraints as the religious awe
of high character or of sacred place and ofhce, laid on
men like Henry and his courtiers, are not to be despised
in any age, and in that lawless and cruel time were al-
most the only safeguards of life and property. If there
be any who are glad to welcome or stimulate attacks,
however unmeasured in language or unjust in fact,
against bishops and clergy, whether Eoman Catholic or
Protestant, in the hope of securing the interests of Chris-
tian liberty against priestly tyranny, they may take warn-
CONCLUSION. 145
ing by the reflection that the greatest impulse ever given
in this country to the cause of sacerdotal independence
was the reaction produced by the horror consequent on
the deed of Fitzurse and Tracy. Those, on the other
hand, who in the curious change of feeling that has
come over our age are inclined to the ancient reverence
for Saint Thomas of Canterbury as the meek and gent.e
saint of holier and happier times than our own, may
perhaps be led to modify their judgment by the descrip-
tion, taken not from his enemies but from his admiring
followers, of the violence, the obstinacy, the furious
words and acts, which deformed even the dignity of
his last hour, and wellnigh turned the solemnity of his
" martyrdom " into an unseemly brawl. They may
learn to see in the brutal conduct of the assassins, in
the abject cowardice of the monks, in the savage mor-
tifications and the fierce passions of Becket himself,
how little ground there is for that paradise of faith
and love which some modern writers find for us in the
age of the Plantagenet kings.^ And for those who be-
lieve that an indiscriminate maintenance of ecclesiasti-
cal claims is the best service they can render to God
and the Church, and that opposition to the powers that
1 One of the ablest of Becket's recent apologists (Ozanam, Les deux
Chanceliers), who combines with his veneration for the Archbishop that
singular admiration which almost all continental Catholics entertain
for the late "Liberator" of Ireland, declares that on O'Connell, if on
any character of this age, the mantle of the saint and martyr has de-
scended. Perhaps the readers of our narrative will think that, in some
respects, the comparison of the Frenchman is true in another sense
than that in which he intended it. So fixed an idea has the similarity
become in the minds of foreign Eoman Catholics, that in a po]iular
life of Saint Thomas, published as one of a series at Prague, under the
authority of the Archliishop of Cologne, the concluding moral is an
appeal to the example of " the most glorious of laymen," as Pope
Gregory XVI. called Daniel O'Connell, who as a second Thomas
strove and suffered for the liberties of his country and his church.
10
146 CONCLUSION.
be is enough to entitle a bishop to the honors of a saint
and a hero, it may not be without instruction to remem-
ber that the Constitutions of Clarendon, which Becket
spent his hfe in opposing, and of which his death pro-
cured the suspension, are now incorporated in tlie Eng-
Ush law, and are regarded, without a dissentient voice,
as among the wisest and most necessary of English in-
stitutions ; that the especial point for which he surren-
dered his life was not the independence of the clergy
from the encroachments of the crown, but the personal
and now forgotten question of the superiority of the See
of Canterbury to the See of York.^ Finally, we must
all remember that the wretched superstitions which
gathered round the shrine of Saint Thomas ended by
completely alienating the affections of thinking men
from his memory, and rendering the name of Becket a
byword of reproach as little proportioned to his real
deserts as had been the reckless veneration paid to it
by his worshippers in the Middle Ages.
1 " Hcec fuit vera et uuica causa aut occasio necis S. Thomse." —
GoussAiNviLLE, in Peter of Blois, ep. 22 (see Robertson, p. 200).
Compare Memorials of Westminster, chap. ii. and chap, v.
The Lad)' Chapel.
EDWARD THE BLACK PRINCE.
This lecture, it will be seen, dwells almost entirely upon those points
which give an interest to the tomb at Canterbury. For any general
view of the subject, the reader must go to Froissart, or to the biog-
raphies of Barnes and James ; for any further details, to the excellent
essays in tlie 20th, 22d, 28th, and 32d volumes of the "Archseologia,"
and to the contemporary metrical life by Chaudos, to which reference
is made in the course of the lecture. The Ordiuance founding his
Chantry, and tlie Will which regulated his funeral and the erection of
his tomb, are printed at the end, with notes by Mr. Albert Way.
EDWARD THE BLACK PRINCE.
Lecture delivered at Canterbury, June, 1852.
EVERY one who has endeavored to study history
must be struck by the advantage which those enjoy
who live within the neighborhood of great historical
monuments. To have seen the place where a great
event happened ; to have seen the picture, the statue,
the tomb, of an illustrious man, — is the next thing to
being present at the event in person, to seeing the scene
with our own eyes. In this respect few spots in Eng-
land are more highly favored than Canterbury. It is
not too much to say that if any one were to go through
the various spots of interest in or around our great
cathedral, and ask what happened here, — who was
the man whose tomb we see, — why was he buried
here, — what effect did his life or his death have on
the world, — a real knowledge of the history of Eng-
land would be obtained, such as the mere reading of
books or hearing of lectures would utterly fail to sup-
ply. And it is my hope that by lectures of this kind
you will be led to acquire this knowledge for yourselves
far more effectually than by hearing anything which the
lectures themselves convey, — and you will have thus
gained not only knowledge, but interest and amuse-
ment in the si^ht of what now seem to be mere stones
150 HISTORICAL LESSON OF THE CATHEDRAL.
or bare walls, but what would then be so many chap-
ters of Eugiish history, so many portraits and pictures
of famous men and famous events in the successive
ages of the world.
Let me, before I begin my immediate subject, show
you very briefly how this may be done. First, if any
one asks why Canterbury is wliat it is, — why from
this small town the first subject in this great kingdom
takes his title, — why we have any cathedral at all, —
the answer is to be found in that great event, the most
important that has ever occurred in English history, —
the conversion of Ethelbert, King of Kent, by the first
missionary, Augustine. And if you would understand
this, it will lead you to make out for yourselves the
history of the Saxon kings, — who they were, whence
they came, — and who Augustine was, why he came, —
and what was the city of Eome, whence he was sent
forth. And then if you enter the cathedral, you will
find in the tombs which lie within its walls remem-
brances of almost every reign in the history of England.
Augustine and the first seven Archbishops are buried
at St. Augustine's ; but from that time to the Eeforma-
tion they have, with a very few exceptions, been buried
in the cathedral, and even where no tombs are left, the
places where they were buried are for the most part
known. And the Archbishops being at that time not
only the chief ecclesiastics, but also the chief oflficers of
State in the kingdom, their graves tell you not merely
the history of the English clergy, but also of the whole
Commonwealth and State of England besides. It is
for this reason that there is no church, no place in the
kingdom, with the exception of Westminster Abbey,
that is so closely connected with the general history of
our common country. The kings before the Eeforma-
THE TOMBS. 151
tion are for the most part in the Abbey ; but their
prime ministers, so to speak, are for the most part in
Canterbury Catliedral.^
Ask who it was that first laid out the monastery,
and who it was that Laid the foundations of the cathe-
dral as it now stands, and you will find that it was
Lanfranc, the new Archbishop whom William the Con-
queror brought over with him from Normandy, and who
thus re-established the old church with his Norman
workmen. Then look at the venerable tower on the
south side of the cathedral, and ask who lies buried
within, and from whom it takes its name, and you will
find yourself with Anselm, the wise counsellor of Wil-
liam Kufus and Henry I., — Anselm, the great theolo-
gian, who of all the primates of the See of Canterbury
is the best known by his life and writings throughout
the world. And then we come to the most remarkable
event that has happened at Canterbury since the arri-
val of Augustine, and of which the effect may be traced
not in one part only, but almost through every stone in
the cathedral, — the murder of Becket ; followed by the
penance of Henry II. and the long succession of Canter-
bury pilgrims. Then, in the south aisle, the effigy of
Hubert Walter brings before us the camp of the Cru-
saders at Acre, where he was appomted Archbishop by
Kichard I. Next look at that simple tomb in St. Mi-
chael's Chapel, half in and half out of the church, and
you will be brought to the time of King John ; for it is
the grave of Stephen Langton, who more than any one
1 See Archbishop Parker's record, compendiously given in Profes-
sor Willis's History of Canterbury Cathedral, pp. 13, 134. I cannot
forbear to express a hope that this series of illustrious tombs will not
be needlessly cut short for all future generations by the recent enact-
ment forbidding the interment even of our Archbishops within their
own cathedrals.
152 BIRTH OF THE BLACK PRIXCE. [1330.
man won for us the Magna Charta. Then look back at
the north transept, at the wooden statue that lies in the
corner. That is the grave of Archbishop Peckham, in
the reign of King Edward I. ; and close beside that spot
King Edward I. was married. And now we come to
the time at which the subject of my lecture begins, the
reign of King Edward III. And so we might pass on
to Archbishop Sudbury, who lost his head in the reign
of Eichard 11. ; to Henry IV., who lies there himself;
to Chichele, wdio takes us on to Henry V. and Henry
VI. ; to Morton, who reminds us of Henry VII. and Sir
Thomas More ; to Warham, the friend of Erasmus, pre-
decessor of Archbishop Cranmer ; and then to the sub-
sequent troubles — of which the cathedral still bears
the marks — in the Reformation and the Civil Wars.
On some future occasion, perhaps, I may be permitted
to speak of the more important of these, as opportunity
may occur. But for the present let us leave the Pri-
mates of Canterbury, and turn to our especial subject.
Let us place ourselves in imagination by the tomb of the
most illustrious layman who rests among us, Edward
Plantagenet, Prince of Wales, commonly called the Black
Prince. Let us ask whose likeness is it that we there see
stretched before us, — why was he buried in this place,
amongst the Archbishops and sacred shrines of former
times, — what can we learn from his life or his death?
[1330.] A few words must first be given to his birth
and childhood. He was born on the 15th of June, 1330,
at the old palace of Woodstock, near Oxford, from which
he was sometimes called Prince Edward of Woodstock.^
He w^as, you will remember, the eldest son of King Ed-
ward III. and Queen Philippa, — a point always to be
remembered in his history, because, like Alexander the
1 Archaeologia, xxii. 227.
1342.] EDUCATION AT QUEEN'S COLLEGE. 153
Great, and a few other eminent instances, he is one of
those men in whom the peculiar qualities both of his
father and of his mother were equally exemplified.
Every one knows the story of the siege of Calais, of
the sternness of King Edward and the gentleness of
Queen Philippa ; and it is the union of these qualities
in their son which gave him the exact place which he
occupies in the succession of our Enghsh princes and
in the history of Europe.
We always like to know where a famous man was
educated. And here we know the place, and also see the
reason why it was chosen. Any of you who have been
at Oxford will remember the long line of buildings which
overlook the beautiful curve of High Street, — the build-
ings of " Queen's College," the College of the Queen. At
the time of which I speak, that college was the great-
est, — two others only in any regular collegiate form ex-
isted in Oxford. It had but just been founded by the
chaplain of Queen Philippa, and took its name from her.
There it was that, according to tradition, the Prince of
Wales, her son, — as in the next generation, Henry V.,
— was brought up. [1342.] If we look at the events
which followed, he could hardly have been twelve years
old when he went. But there were then no schools in
England, and their place was almost entirely supplied
by the universities. Queen's College is much altered
in every way since the little Prince went there ; but
they still keep an engraving of the vaulted room, which
he is said to have occupied ; ^ and though most of the
old customs which prevailed in the college, and which
made it a very peculiar place even then, have long since
disappeared, some which are mentioned by the founder,
and which therefore must have been in use when the
1 It now hangs in the gallery above the hall of Queen's College.
154 EDUCATION AT QUEEN'S COLLEGE. [1342.
Prince was there, still continue. You may still hear
the students summoned to dinner, as he was, by the
sound of a trumpet ; and in the hall you may still see,
as he saw, the Fellows sitting all on one side of the
table, with the Head of the college in the centre, in
imitation of the " Last Supper," as it is commonly rep-
resented in pictures.^ The very names of the Head
and the twelve Fellows (the number tirst appointed by
the founder, in likeness of our Lord and the Apostles),
who were presiding over the college when the Prince
was there, are known to us.^ He must have seen — what
has long since vanished away — the thirteen beggars,
deaf, dumb, maimed, or blind, daily brought into the
hall to receive their dole of bread, beer, pottage, and
fish.^ He must have seen the seventy poor scholars,
instituted after the example of the seventy disciples,
and learning from their two chaplains to chant the ser-
vice.* He must have heard the mill within or hard by
the college walls grinding the Fellows' bread. He must
have seen the porter of the college going round the
rooms betimes in the morning to shave the beards and
wash the heads of the Fellows.^ In these and many
other curious particulars, we can tell exactly what the
customs and appearance of the college were when the
Prince was there. It is more difficult to answer another
question, which we always wish to know about famous
men, — Who were his companions ? An old tradition
(unfortunately beset with doubts) points to one youth
at that time in Oxford, and at Queen's College,^ whom
1 Statutes of Queen's College, p. 11.
- Ibid., pp. 9, .33. 8 Ibid., p. 30. 4 ibj,]., p. 27.
5 Ibid., pp. 28, 29.
6 For the doubts respecting the tradition of the Black Prince and
of Wycliffe at Queen's College, see Appendix.
1346.] BATTLE OF CRESSY. 155
we shall all recognize as an old acquaintance, — John
Wycliffe, the first English Eeformer, and the first trans-
lator of the Bible into English. He would have been
a poor boy, in a threadbare coat,^ and devoted to study,
and the Prince probably never exchanged looks or words
with him. But we shall be glad to l^e allowed to believe
that once at least in their lives the great soldier of the
age had crossed the path of the great Eeformer, Each
thought and cared little for the other ; their characters
and pursuits and sympathies were as different as were
their stations in life. Let us be thankful if we have
learned to understand them both, and see what was
good in each, far better than they did themselves.
We now pass to the next events of his life ; those
which have really made him almost as famous in war
as Wycliffe has been in peace, — the two great battles
of Cressy and of Poitiers. I will not now go into the
origin of the war of which these two battles formed
the turning-points It is enough for us to remem-
ber that it was undertaken by Edward III. to gain the
crown of France, — a claim, through his mother, which
he had solemnly relinquished, but which he now re-
sumed to satisfy the scruples of his allies, the citizens
of Ghent, who thought that their oath of allegiance
to the " King of France " would be redeemed if their
leader did but bear the name.
[1346.] And now first for Cressy. I shall not un-
dertake to describe the whole fight, but will call yovir
attention briefly to the questions which every one ought
to ask himself, if he wishes to understand anything
about any battle whatever. First, Where was it fought ?
secondly, Why was it fought ? thirdly, How was it won ?
and fourthly, What was the result of it ? And to this
1 See Chaucer's description of the Oxford Clerk.
156 BATTLE OF CRESSY. [1346.
I must add, in the present instance, What part was
taken in it by the Prince, whom we left as a little boy
at Oxford, but who was now following his father as a
young knight in his first great campaign ? The first
of these questions involves the second also. If we
make out where a battle was fought, this usually tells
us why it was fought; and this is one of the many
proofs of the use of learning geography together with
history. Each helps us to understand the other. Ed-
ward had ravaged Normandy and reached the very
gates of Paris, and was retreating towards Flanders
when he was overtaken by the French king, Philip,
who with an immense army had determined to cut
him off entirely, and so put an end to the war.^ With
difficulty and by the happy accident of a low tide, he
crossed the mouth of the Somme, and found himself
in his own maternal inheritance of Ponthieu, and for
that special reason encamped near the forest of Cressy,
fifteen miles east of Abbeville: "I am," he said, "on
the right heritage of Madam my mother, which was
given her in dowry; I will defend it against my adver-
sary, Philip of Valois." It was Saturday, the 28th of
August, 1346, and it was at four in the afternoon that
1 See the interesting details of the battle, in " Archseologia," vol.
xxviii., taken from records in the Town Hall at Abbeville. The scene
of the battle has been the snbject of much controversy. An able though
prejudiced attack on the traditional field is contained in a Memoir on
the subject by M. Ambert, a French officer (Spectateur Militaire, 1845,
Paris, Rue Jacob, .30), wliich has been in turn impugned, as it seems
to me with good reason, in the third edition of M. Seymour de Con-
stant's Essay on the same subject. It is possible that the local tradi-
tions may be groundless, but I never saw any place (out of Scotland)
where the recollection of a past event had struck such root in the
minds of the peasantry. M. Ambert represents the event, not as a
battle, but as "un accident social," "un eve'nement politique et social,"
" un choc," "une crise revolutionnaire."
134G.| BATTLE OF CRESSY. 157
the battle commenced. It always helps us better to
imagine any remarkable event, when we know at what
time of the day or night it took place ; and on this
occasion it is of great importance, because it helps us
at once to answer the third question we asked, — How
was the battle won ? The French army had advanced
from Abbeville after a hard day's march to overtake
the retiring enemy. All along the road, and flooding
the hedgeless plains which bordered the road, the
army, swelled by the surrounding peasantry, rolled
along, crying, " Kill! kill!" drawing their swords and
thinking that they were sure of their prey. What the
French King chiefly relied upon (besides his great
numbers) was tlie troop of fifteen thousand cross-bow-
men from Genoa. These were made to stand in front ;
when, just as the engagement was about to take place,
one of those extraordinary incidents occurred, which
often turn the fate of battles, as they do of human life
in general. A tremendous storm gathered from the
west, and broke in thunder and rain and hail on the
field of battle. The sky was darkened, and the horror
was increased by the hoarse cries of crows and ra-
vens, which fluttered before the storm, and struck terror
into the hearts of the Italian bowmen, who were un-
accustomed to these northern tempests. And when at
last the sky had cleared, and they prepared their cross-
bows to shoot, the strings had been so wet by the rain
that they could not draw them. By this time the
evening sun streamed out in full splendor ^ over the
black clouds of the western sky, — right in their faces ;
and at the same moment the English archers, who had
kept their bows in cases during the storm, and so had
^ " A sun issuing from a cloud was the badge of the Black Prince,
probably from this occurrence." — Archceologia, xx. 106.
158 BATTLE OF CRESSY. [1346.
their strings dry, let fly their arrows so fast and thick,
that those who were present could only compare it to
snow or sleet. Through and through the heads and
necks and hands of the Genoese bowmen the arrows
pierced. Unable to stand it, they turned and fled ;
and from that moment the panic and confusion was
so great that the day was lost.
But though the storm and the sun and the archers
had their part, we must not forget the Prince. He
was, we must remember, only sixteen, and yet he com-
manded the whole English army. It is said that the
reason of this was that the King of France had been
so bent on destroying the English forces that he had
hoisted the sacred banner of France ^ — the great scar-
let flag, embroidered with golden lilies, called the Ori-
flamme — as a sign that no quarter would be given ;
and that when King Edward saw this, and saw the
hazard to which he should expose not only the army,
but the whole kingdom, if he were to fall in battle, he
determined to leave it to his son. On the top of a
windmill, of which the solid tower still is to be seen
on the ridge overhanging the field, the king, for what-
ever reason, remained bareheaded, whilst the young
Prince, who had been knighted ^ a month before, went
forward with his companions in arms into the very
thick of the fray ; and when his father saw that the
victory was virtually gained, he forbore to interfere.
" Let the child icin his spurts " he said, in words which
have since become a proverb, " and let the dai/ he his."
The Prince was in very great danger at one moment;
1 The Oriflamme of France, like the green Standard of the Prophet
in the Tnrkish Empire, had the effect of declaring the war to be what
was called a " Holy War," — that is, a war of extermination.
- Archneologia, xxxi. 3.
1346.] NAME OF "BLACK PRINCE." 159
he was wounded and thrown to the ground, and
only saved by IJichard de Beaumont, who carried the
great banner of Wales, throwing the banner over the
boy as he lay on the ground, and standing upon it till
he had driven back the assailants.^ The assailants
were driven back, and far through the long summer
evening and deep into the summer night the battle
raged. It was not till all was dark, that the Prince
and his companions halted from their pursuit ; and
then huge fires and torches were lit up, that the king
might see where they were. And then took place the
touching interview between the father and the son ; the
king embracing the boy in front of the wliole army,
by the red light of the blazing fires, and saying, " Siceet
son, God give you good perseverance ; you are my true
son, — right loyally have you acquitted yourself this day,
and worthy are you of a crown." And the young Prince,
after the reverential manner of those times, " bowed
to the ground, and gave all the honor to the king his
father." The next day the king walked over the field
of carnage with the Prince, and said, " Wliat think you
of a battle ? Is it an agreeable game ? " ^
The general result of the battle w^as the deliverance
of the English army from a most imminent danger,
and subsequently the conquest of Calais, which the
king immediately besieged and won, and which re-
mained in the possession of the English from that day
to the reign of Queen Mary. From that time the
Prince became the darling of the English and the ter-
ror of the French ; and whether from this terror or
from the black armor which he wore on that day,^
^ Archaeologia, xxxviii. 184. Ibid., 187.
^ The king dressed his son before the battle " en armure noire en
fer bruni." See Louandre's Histoire d'Abbeville, p. 230.
160 BATTLE OF POITIERS. [1356.
and which contrasted with the fairness of his com-
plexion, he was called by them " Le Prince Noir" (the
Black Prince),^ and from them the name has passed
to us ; so that all his other sounding titles, by which
the old poems call him, — "Prince of Wales, Duke of
Aquitaine," — are lost in the one memorable name
which he won for himself in his first fight at Cressy.
[1356.] And now we pass over ten years, and find
him on the field of Poitiers. Again we must ask,
what brought him there, and why the battle was
fought. He was this time alone ; his father, though
the war had rolled on since the battle of Cressy, was in
England. But in other respects the beginning of the
fight was very like that of Cressy, Gascony belonged
to him by right, and from this he made a descent into
the neighboring provinces, and was on his return home,
when the King of France — John, the son of Philip —
pursued him as his father had pursued Edward III.,
aud overtook him suddenly on the high upland fields
which extended for many miles south of the city of
Poitiers. It is the third great battle which has been
fought in that neighborhood : the first was that in
which Clovis defeated the Goths, and established the
faith in the creed of Athanasius throughout Europe ;
the second was that in which Charles Martel drove
back the Saracens, and saved Europe from Mahom-
etanism ; the third was this, — the most brilliant of
English victories over the French. ^ The spot, which is
1 See p. 177 ; also his Will (Appendix, p. 197), where he speaks of the
black drapery of his " hall," the black banners, and the black devices
which he used in tournaments. We may compare, too, the black pony
upon which he rode on his famous entry into London. (Froissart.)
- The battle of Clovis is believed to have been at Voulon, on the
road to Bordeaux ; that of Charle.s Martel is uncertain. These three
battles (with that of Moncontour, fought not far off, in 1569, after
1356.] BATTLE OF POITIERS. 161
about six miles south of Poitiers, is still known by the
name of the Battle-field. Its features are very slightly
marked, — two ridges of rising ground, parted by a gen-
tle hollow ; behind the highest of these two ridges is
a large tract of copse and underwood, and leading up
to it from the hollow is a somewhat steep lane, there
shut in by woods and vines on each side. It was on
this ridge that the Prince had taken up his position,
and it was solely by the good use which he made of
this position that the victory was won. The French
army was arranged on the other side of the hollow in
three great divisions, of which the king's was the hind-
most ; the farm-house which marks the spot where this
division was posted is visible from the walls of Poitiers.
It was on Monday, Sept. 19, 1356, at nine A. M., that
the battle began. All the Sunday had been taken up
by fruitless endeavors of Cardinal Talleyrand to save
the bloodshed by bringing the king and Prince to
terms, — a fact to be noticed for two reasons : first, be-
cause it shows the sincere and Christian desire which
the siege of Poitiers, by Admiral Coligny) are well described by M. S.
Hippolyce, in a number of the " Spectateur Militaire." For my ac-
quaintance with this work, as well as for any details which follow
relating to the battle, I am indebted to the kindness and courtesy
of M. Foucart, of Poitiers, in whose company I visited the field of
battle in the summer of 1851. The site of the field has been much
contested by antiquaries, but now appears to be fixed beyond dispute.
The battle is said to have been fought " at Maupertuis, between
Beauvoir and the Abbey of Nouille." There is a place called Mau-
pertuis near a village Beauvoir, on the north of Poitiers, which has
led some to transfer the battle thither ; but besides the general argu-
ments, both from tradition and from the probabilities of the case in
favor of the southern site, there is a deed in the municipal archives
of Poitiers, in which the farm-house now called La Cardiuiere (from
its owner Cardina, to whom it was granted by Louis XIV., like many
estates in the neighborhood called from their owners) is said to be
"alias Maupertuis." The fine Gothic ruin of the Abbey of Nouille
also remains, a quarter of an hour's walk from the field.
11
162 BATTLE OF POITIEKS. [1356.
animated tlie clergy of those times, in the midst of all
their faults, to promote peace and good-will amongst
the savage men with whom they lived ; and secondly,
because the refusal of the French King and Prince to
be persuaded shows, on this occasion, the confidence of
victory which had possessed them.
The Prince offered to give up all the castles and
prisoners he had taken, and to swear not to fight in
Prance again for seven years. But the king would
hear of nothing but his absolute surrender of himself
and his army on the spot. The Cardinal labored till
the very last moment, and then rode back to Poitiers,
having equally offended both parties. The story of the
battle, if we remember the position of the armies, is
told in a moment. The Prince remained firm in his
position ; the French charged with their usual chival-
rous ardor, — charged up the lane ; the English arch-
ers, whom the Prince had stationed behind the hedges
on each side, let fly their showers of arrows, as at
Cressy ; in an instant the lane was choked with the
dead ; and the first check of such headstrong confi-
dence was fatal. Here, as at Cressy, was exemplified
the truth of the remark of the mediaeval historian, —
"We now no longer contest our battles, as did the
Greeks and Ptomans ; the first stroke decides all." ^
The Prince in his turn charged : a general panic seized
the whole French army ; the first and second division
fled in the wildest confusion ; the third alone, where
King John stood, made a gallant resistance ; the king
was taken prisoner, and by noon the whole was over.
Up to the gates of the town of Poitiers the French
army fled and fell ; and their dead bodies were buried 1 jy
heaps within a convent which still remains in the city.
1 Lanone, quoted iu JI. Ambcrt's Memoir on Cress}, p. 14.
1356.] BATTLE OF POITIERS. 163
It was a wonderful day. It was eight thousand to sixty
thousand ; the Prince, who had gained the battle, was
still only twenty-six, — that is, a year younger than
Napoleon at the beginning of his campaigns, — and the
battle was distinguished from among all others by the
number not of the slain but of the prisoners, — one
Englishman often taking four or five Frenchmen.^
" The day of the battle at night, the Prince gave a
supper in his lodgings to the French King, and to
most of the great lords that were prisoners. The
Prince caused the king and his son to sit at one table,
and other lords, knights, and squires at the others ; and
the Prince always served the king very humbly, and
would not sit at the king's table, although he requested
him, — he said he was not qualified to sit at the table
with so great a prince as the king was. Then he said
to the king : ' Sir, for God's sake make no bad cheer,
thougli your will was not accomplished this day. For,
Sir, the king, my father, will certainly bestow on you
as much honor and friendship as he can, and will agree
with you so reasonably that you shall ever after be
friends ; and, Sir, I think you ought to rejoice, though
the battle be not as you will, for you have this day
gained the high honor of prowess, and have surpassed
all others on your side in valor. Sir, I say not this in
raillery ; for all our party, who saw every man's deeds,
agree in this, and give you the palm and chaplet.'
1 See the despatch addressed by the Black Prince to the Bishop of
Worcester a month after the engagement. (Archreologia, i. 213.) It
winds up with a list of prisoners, and finishes thus : —
" Et sont pris, etc., des gentz d'armes m.ixc.xxxiii. — Gaudete iu
Domino
Et outre sont mortz mmccccxxvi. Iterum dico Gaudete ! "
It is remarkable that he notices that he had set out on his expedi-
tion on the eve of the Translation of Saint Thomas.
164 THE PJllNCE VISITS CANTERBUKY. [1357.
Therewith the Frenchmen whispered among themselves
that the Prince had spoken nobly, and that most prob-
ably he would prove a great hero, if God preserved his
life, to persevere in such good fortune."
It was after this great battle that we first hear of the
Prince's connection with Canterbury. There is, it is
true, a strange contradiction ^ between the English and
French historians as to the spot of the Prince's land-
ing and the course of his subsequent journey. IJut the
usual story, as told by Froissart, is as follows : —
[1357.] On the 16th of April, 1357, the Prince
with the French King landed at Sandwich ; there they
stayed two days, and on the I'Jth entered Canterbury.
Simon of Islip was now Archbishop, and he probably
would be there to greet them. The French King, if we
may suppose that the same course was adopted here
as when they reached London, rode on a magnificent
cream-colored charger, the Prince on a little black pony
at his side. They came into the cathedral, and made
their offerings at the shrine of St. Thomas. Tradition ^
says, but without any probability of truth, that the
old room above St. Anselm's Chapel was used as King
John's prison. He may possibly have seen it, but he is
hardly likely to have lived there. At any rate, they
were only here for a day, and then again advanced on
their road to London. One other tradition we may
perhaps connect with this visit. Behind the hospital
at Harbledown is an old well, still called " The Black
Prince's Well." If this is the only time that he passed
through Canterbury, — and it is tlie only time that we
hear of, — then we may suppose that in the steep road
1 See Appendix.
2 Gostling's Walks about Canterbury, p. 2G3. For his later visit
to Canterbury, see " Becket's Slirine."
The Crypt, Gabriel Chapel.
1363] THE PRINCE'S MARRIAGE. 165
underneath the hospital he halted, as we know that all
pilgrims did, to see Becket's shoe, which was kept in
the hospital, and that he may have gone down, on the
other side of the hill to wash, as others did, in the
water of the spring ; and we may well suppose that
such an occasion would never be forgotten, and that
his name would live long afterwards in the memory of
the old almsmen.
[1363.] Canterbury, however, had soon a more sub-
stantial connection with the Black Prince. In 1363
he married his cousin Joan in the chapel at Windsor ;
which witnessed no other royal wedding till that beau-
tiful and touching day which witnessed the union of
our own Prince of Wales with the Princess Alexandra
of Denmark. Of these nuptials Edward the Black
Prince left a memorial in the beautiful chapel still to
be seen in the crypt of the cathedral, where two
priests were to pray for his soul, first in his lifetime,
and also, according to the practice of those times, after
his death. It is now, by a strange turn of fortune
which adds another link to the historical interest of the
place, the entrance to the chapel of the French con-
gregation, — the descendants of the very nation whom
he conquered at Poitiers ; but you can still trace the
situation of the two altars where his priests stood, and
on the groined vaultings you can see his arms and
the arms of his father, and, in connection with the joy-
ful event, in thankfulness for which he founded the
chapel, what seems to be the face of his beautiful wife,
commonly known as the Fair Maid of Kent. For the
permission to found this chantry, he left to the Chapter
of Canterbury an estate which still belongs to them,
not far from his own Palace of Kennington and from
the road still called the " Prince's Ptoad," — the manor
166 SPANISH CAMPAIGN. |1.1f,r,.
of " Fawkes' Hall." This ancient namesake of the more
celeljrated Guy was, as we learn from legal records, a
powerful baron in the reign of John, and received from
that king a grant of land in South Lambeth, where he
built a hall or mansion-house, called from him " Fawkes'
Hall," or " La Salle de Fawkes." He would have little
thought of the strange antl universal fame his house
would acquire in the form in which we are now so
familiar with it in the gardens, the factories, the bridge,
and the railway station of Vauxhall}
[1366.] And now we have to go again over ten years,
and we find tlie Prince engaged in a war in Spain, help-
ing Don Pedro, King of Spain, against his brother. ]]ut
this would take us too far away, — 1 will only say that
here also he won a most brilliant victory, the battle of
Nejara, in 1367; and it is interesting to remember that
the first great commander of the English armies had a
peninsular war to fight as well as the last, and that the
flower of English chivalry led his troops through the
pass of lioncesvalles,
" Wliere Charleniague auil all his peerage fell,"
in the days of the old romances.
[1376.] Once again, then, we pass over ten years
(for by a singular coincidence, which has been observed
by others, the life of the Prince thus naturally di-
vides itself), and we find ourselves at the end, — at
that last scene, which is in fact the main connection of
the Black Prince with Canterbury. The expedition to
Spain, though accompanied by one splendid victory had
ended disastrously. From that moment the fortunes
of the Prince were overcast. A lonsi and wasting ill-
1 See Appendix. Fdi- tlio history of Fawkes, see Foss's Judges,
ii. 2.tG ; Archaeological Journal, iv. 275.
1370.] HIS APPEARANCE IN PAKLIAMENT. • 167
ness, which he contracted in the southern climate of
Spain, broke down his constitution ; a rebellion occa-
sioned by his own wastefulness, whicli was one of the
faults of his character, burst forth in his French prov-
inces ; his father was now shiking in years, and sur-
rounded by unworthy favorites, — such was the state in
which the Prince returned for the last time to England.
For four years he lived in almost entire seclusion at
Berkhamstead, in preparation for his approaching end ;
often he fell into long fainting-fits, which his attendants
mistook for death. One of the traditions which con-
nects his name with the well at Harbledown speaks of
his having had the water ^ brought thence to him as he
lay sick — or, according to a more common but ground-
less story, dying — in the Archbishop"s palace at Can-
terbury. Once more, however, his youthful energy,
though in a different form, shot up in an expiring flame.
His father, I have said, was sinking into dotage ; and
the favorites of the court were taking advantage of him,
to waste the public money. Parliament met, — Par-
liament, as you must remember, unlike the two great
Houses which now sway the destiny of the empire, but
still feeling its way towards its present powers, — Parlia-
ment met to check this growing evil ; and then it was
that when they looked round in vain for a leader to guide
their counsels and support their wavering resolutions,
the dying Prince came forth from his long retirement,
and was carried up to London, to assist his country in
this time of its utmost need. His own residence was
a palace which stood on what is now called Fish Street
Hill, the street opposite the London Monument. But
1 There is no doubt that the well has always been supposed to pos-
sess medicinal qualities, and this was probably the cause of Lanfranc's
selection of that spot for his leper-house.
168 HIS DEATHBED. [1376.
he would not rest there ; he was brought to the Eoyal
Pahice of Westminster, that he might be close at hand
to be carried from his sick-bed to the Parliament, which
met in the chambers of the palace. This was on the
28th of April, 1376. The spirit of the Parliament and
the nation revived as they saw him, and the purpose for
which he came was accomplished. But it was his last
effort. Day by day his strength ebbed away, and he
never again moved from the palace at Westminster.
On the 7th of June he signed his will, by which, as we
shall presently see, directions were given for his funeral
and tomb. On the 8th he rapidly sank. The begin-
ning of his end cannot be better told than in the words
of the herald Chandos, who had attended him in all his
wars, and who was probably present : —
" Theu the Prince caused his chambers to be opened
And all his followers to come in,
Who in his time had served him,
And served him with a free will ;
' Sirs,' said he, ' pardon me ;
For, by the faith I owe you,
Yuu have served me loyally,
Though I cannot of my means
Render to each his guerdon ;
But God by his most holy name
And saints, will render it you.'
Then each wept heartily
And mourned right tenderly,
All wlio were there present,
Earl, baron, and bachelor ;
Tlieu he said in a clear voice,
' I recommend to you my sou,
Who is yet but young and small,
And pray that as you served me,
So from your heart you would serve him.'
Then he called the King his father.
And the Duke of Lancaster his brother,
And commended to them his wife,
And his son, whom he greatly loved.
And straightway entreated them ;
137G.] HIS DEATHBED 169
And each was willing to give liis aid,
Each swore upon the boolc,
And tiiey jjromised hitn freely
That tliey would comfort his son
And maintain him in his right;
All the princes and barons
Swore all round to this,
And the noble Prince of fame
Gave them an hundred thousand thanks.
But till then, so God aid me,
Never was seen such bitter grief
As was at his departure.
The right nol)le excellent Prince
Felt such pain at heart.
That it almost burst
With moaning and sighing,
And crying out iu his pain
So great suffering did he endure,
That there was no man living
Who had seen his agony,
But would heartily have pitied liim." ^
In this last agony he was, as he had been through
life, specially attentive to the wants of his servants
and dependants ; and after having made them large
gifts, he called his little son to his bedside, and charged
him on pain of his curse never to take them away from
them as long as he lived.
The doors still remained open, and his attendants
were constantly passing and re-passing, down to the
least page, to see their dying master. Such a deathbed
had hardly been seen since the army of Alexander the
Great defiled through his room during his last illness.
As the day wore away, a scene occurred which showed
how even at that moment the stern spirit of his fa-
ther still lived on in his shattered frame. A knight, Sir
1 Chandos's Poem of the Black Prince, edited and translated for
the Roxburghe Club by the Rev. H. O. Coxe, Sub-lilirarian of the Bod-
leian Library at Oxford. May I tnke this opportunity of expressing
my grateful sense of his assistance t)n this and on all other occasions
when I have had the pleasure of referring to him ?
170 EXORCISM BY THE BISHOP OF BANGOK. [1376.
Eichard Strong by name, who had offended him by the
evil counsel he had given to the king, came in with
the rest. Instantly the Prince broke out into a harsh
rebuke, and told him to leave the room and see his
face no more. This burst of passion was too much for
him, — he sank into a fainting-fit. The end was evi-
dently near at hand ; and the Bishop of Bangor, who
was standing by the bedside of the dying man, struck
perhaps by the scene which had just occurred, strongly
exhorted him from the bottom of his lieart to forgive
all his enemies, and ask forgiveness of God and of men.
The Prince replied, " I will." But the good Bishop was
not so to be satisfied. Again he urged : " It suffices
not to say only ' I will ; ' but where you have power,
you ought to declare it in words, and to ask pardon."
Again and again the Prince doggedly answered, " I
will." The Bishop was deeply grieved, and in the be-
lief of those times, of which we may still admire the
spirit, though the form both of his act and expression
has long since passed away, he said, " An evil spirit
holds his tongue, — we must drive it away, or he will
die in his sins ; " and so saying, he sprinkled holy
water over the four corners of the room, and com-
manded the evil spirit to depart. The Prince was
vexed by an evil spirit, though not in the sense in
which the good Bishop meant it ; he was vexed by the
evil spirit of bitter revenge, which was the curse of
those feudal times, and which now, thank God, though
it still lingers amongst us, has ceased to haunt those
noble souls which then were its especial prey. That
evil spirit did depart, though not perhaps by the means
then used to expel it ; the Christian words of the
good man had produced their effect, and in a moment
the Prince's whole look and manner was altered. He
1376.] HIS DEATH. 171
joined his hands, lifted up his eyes to heaven, and said:
" I give thee thanks, God, for all thy benefits, and
with all the pains of my soul I humbly beseech thy
mercy to give me remission of those sins I have wick-
edly committed against thee ; and of all mortal men
whom willingly or ignorantly I have offended, with
all my heart I desire forgiveness." With these words,
which seem to have been the last effort of exhausted
nature, he immediately expired.^
It was at three P. M., on Trinity Sunday, — a festival
which he had always honored with especial reverence ;
it was on tlie 8th of June, just one month before his
birthday, in his forty-sixth year, — the same age which
has closed the career of so many illustrious men both
in peace and war, — that the Black Prince breathed his
last.
Far and wide the mourning spread when the news
was known. Even amongst his enemies, in the beauti-
ful chapel of the palace of the French kings, — called
the Sainte Chapelle, or Holy Chapel, — funeral services
were celebrated by King Louis, son of that King John
whom he had taken prisoner at Poitiers. Most deeply,
of course, was the loss felt in his own family and circle,
of which he had been so long the pride and ornament.
His companion in arms, the Captal de Buch, was so
heart-broken that he refused to take any food, and in
a few days died of starvation and grief. His father,
already shaken in strength and years, never recovered
the blow, and lingered on only for one more year.
" Mighty victor, mighty lord, —
Low on his funeral couch he lies.
Is the sable warrior fled ?
Thy son is gone. He rests among the dead."
1 Archoeologia, xxii. 229.
172 MOURNING. [1376.
But most striking was the mourning of the whole
English nation. Seldom, if ever, has the death of one
man so deeply struck the sympathy of the English
people. Our fathers saw the mourning of the whole
country over the Princess Charlotte, and the great fu-
neral procession which conveyed the remains of Nel-
son to their resting-place in St. Paul's, — we ourselves
have seen the deep grief over the sudden death of our
most illustrious statesman, — we know what is the
feeling with which we should at this moment ^ regard
the loss of the great commander who perhaps more
than any other single person has filled in our minds
the place of the Black Prince. But in order to ap-
preciate the mourning of the people, when Edward
Plantagenet passed away, we must coniLine all these
feelings. He was the cherished heir to the throne of
England, and his untimely death would leave the crown
in the hands of a child, — the prey, as was afterwards
proved, to popular seditions and to ambitious rivals.
He was the great soldier, "in whose health the hopes
of Englishmen had flourished, in whose distress they
had languished, in whose death they had died. In his
life they had feared no invasion, no encounter in battle ;
he went against no army that he did not conquer, he at-
tacked no city that he did not take," and now to whom
were they to look ? The last time they had seen him
in public was as the champion of popular rights against
a profligate court, as fearless in the House of Parlia-
ment as he had been on the field of battle. And yet
more, he died at a moment when all was adverse and
threatening, — when all was blank in the future, and
' This was written in June, 1852, and (with all that follows) has
been left unaltered. The coincidences with what actually took place
in the autumn of that year will occur to every one.
1376.] HIS FUNERAL. 173
that future was dark with cloud and storm. John
Wydiffe, with whom we parted at Oxford thirty years
ago, had already begun to proclaim those great changes
which shook to their centre the institutions of the
country. There were mutterings, too, of risings in
classes hitherto not thought of, — Wat Tyler and Jack
Cade were already on the horizon of Kent and of Eng-
land ; and in the rivalry of the king's sons, now left
without an acknowledged chief, were already laid the
seeds of the long and dreadful wars of the houses of
York and Lancaster.
It is by remembering these feelings that we shall
best enter into the closing scene, with which we are
here so nearly connected.
For nearly four months — from the 8th of June to
the 29th of September — the coffined body lay in state
at Westminster, and then, as soon as Parliament met
again, as usual in those times, on the festival of
Michaelmas, was brought to Canterbury. It was laid
in a stately hearse, drawn by twelve black horses ; and
the whole Court, and both houses of Parliament fol-
lowed in deep mourning. The great procession started
from Westminster Palace ; it passed through what
was then the little village of Charing, clustered in the
midst of the open fields of St. ]\Iartin, round Queen
Eleanor's Cross. It passed along the Strand, by the
houses of the great nobles, who had so often fought
side by side with him in his wars ; and the Savoy
Palace, where twenty years before he had lodged the
French King as his prisoner in triumph. It passed un-
der the shade of the lofty tower of the old cathedral
of St. Paul's, which had so often resounded with Te
Deums for his victories. It descended the steep hill,
overhung by the gray walls of his own palace, above
174 HIS FUNEEAL. [1376.
London Bridge ; and over that ancient bridge, then the
only bridge in London, it moved onwards on its road
to Canterbury, — that same road wliich at this very
time had become so well known from Chaucer's " Can-
terbury Tales."
On entering Canterbury they paused at the west gate
of Canterbury, — not the one which now stands there,
which was built a few years later, — but an older gate-
way, with the little chapel of Holycross at the top, sur-
mounted by a lofty cross, seen far off, as the procession
descended from Harbledown. Here they were met —
so the Prince had desired in his will ^ — by two chargers,
fully caparisoned, and mounted by two riders in com-
plete armor, — one bearing the Prince's arms of Eng-
land and France, the other the ostrich feathers ; one
to represent the Prince in his splendid suite as he rode
in war, the other to represent him in black as he rode
to tournaments. Four black banners followed. So they
passed through the streets of the city, till they reached
the gate of the Precincts. Here, according to the cus-
tom, the armed men ^ halted, and the body was carried
into the cathedral. In the space between the high altar
and the choir a bier was placed to receive it, whilst the
funeral services were read, surrounded with burning ta-
pers and with all the heraldic pomp which marked his
title and rank. It must have been an august assemblage
which took part in those funeral prayers. The aged
king, in all probability, was not there, but we cannot
doubt that the executors were present. One was his ri-
val brother John of Gaunt, Duke of Lancaster. Another
was his long-tried friend, William of Wykeham, Pishop
of Winchester, whose name is still dear to hundreds of
1 See Appendix.
- See .Murder of Becket, pp. 99, 104, 118.
HIS TOMB.
175
-if / '
Euglisliinen, old and young, from the two magnificent
colleges which he founded at Winchester and at Oxford.
A third was Courtenay, Bishop of Loudon, who now lies
at the Prince's feet, and
Simon of Sudbury, who
had been Arclibishop of
Canterbury in the previ-
ous years, — he whose
magnificent bequests still
appear in the gates and
walls of the city, — hf
whose fate it was to be
the first to suffer in the
troubles which the
Prince's death would
cause, who was beheaded
by the rebels under Wat
Tyler on the Tower Hill,
and whose burial was the
next great funeral within
tlie walls of the cathe-
dral. And now, from the
choir, the body was again
raised up, and carried to
the tomb.
We have seen already
that twelve years before
the Prince had turned
his thoughts to Canter-
bury Cathedral as his
last home, when in remembrance of his visit to the
shrine of St. Thomas, and of the fact that the church
w\as dedicated to the Holy Trinity, which, as we have
seen, he had honored with especial reverence, he
THE TOMB OF THE BLACK PRINCE IN
CANTERBURY CATHEDRAL.
176 HIS TOMB.
founded the chapel in the crypt. In the centre of
that crypt, on the spot where you now see the grave-
stone of Archbishop Morton, it had been his wish to
be laid, as expressed in the will which he signed only
the day before his death. But those who were con-
cerned with the funeral had prepared for him a more
magnificent resting-place ; not in the darkness of the
crypt, but high aloft in the sacred space behind the al-
tar, and on the south side of the shrine of St. Thomas,
in the chapel itself of the Holy Trinity, on the festival
of which he had expired, they determined that the body
of the hero should be laid. That space is now sur-
rounded with monuments ; then it was entirely, or
almost entirely, vacant.^ The gorgeous shrine stood in
the centre on its colored pavement, but no other corpse
had been admitted within that venerated ground, — no
other, perhaps, would have been admitted but that of
the Black Prince. It was twenty-seven years before
the iron gates of the chapel would again be opened to
receive the dead, and this too would be a royal corpse,
— the body of King Henry IV., now a child ten years
old, and perhaps present as a mourner in this very fu-
neral, but destined to overthrow the Black Prince's son,
and then to rest by his side.
In this sacred spot — believed at that time to be
the most sacred spot in England — the tomb stood in
which, " alone in his glory," the Prince was to be de-
posited, to be seen and admired by all the countless
pilgrims who crawled up the stone steps beneath it on
their way to the shrine of the saint.^
1 The ouly exception could have been the tomb whicli stands on
the southeast side of the Trinity Chapel, and which, though not as
early as Theobald, to whom it is commonly ascribed, must be of the
beginning of the thirteenth centnry-
- An exactly analogous position, by Saint Alban's shrine, is a.s-
EFFECTS OF THE PRINCE'S LIFE. 177
Let us turn to that tomb, and see how it sums up
his whole life. Its bright colors have long since faded,
but enough still remains to show us what it was as it
stood after the sacred remains had been placed within
it. There he lies : no other memorial of him exists in
the world so authentic. There he lies, as he had di-
rected, in full armor, his head resting on his helmet, his
feet with the likeness of " the spurs he won " at Cressy,
his hands joined as in that last prayer which he had
offered up on his deathbed. There you can see his fine
face with the Plantagenet features, the flat cheeks, and
the well-chiselled nose, to be traced perhaps in the
effigy of his father in Westminster Abbey and of his
grandfather in Gloucester Cathedral. On his armor
you can still see the marks of the bright gilding with
which the figure was covered from head to foot, so as
to make it look like an image of pure gold. High
above are suspended the brazen gauntlets, the helmet,
with what was once its gilded leopard-crest, and the
wooden shield ; the velvet coat also, embroidered with
the arms of France and England, now tattered and col-
orless, but then blazing with blue and scarlet. There,
too, still hangs the empty scabbard of the sword
wielded perchance at his three great battles, and which
Oliver Cromwell, it is said, carried away.^ On the can-
opy over the tomb there is the faded representation —
painted after the strange fashion of those times — of
the Persons of the Holy Trinity, according to the pecu-
liar devotion which he had entertained. In the pillais
you can see the hooks to which was fastened the black
tapestry, with its crimson border and curious embroi-
signed in the Abbey of St Albans to the tomb ot Humphrey, Duke of
Gloucester.
1 For tlie history of this sword, see A]>peudix.
12
178
EFFECTS OF THE PRINCES LIFE.
dery, which he dh-ected in his will should be hung round
his tomb and the shrine of Becket. Eound about the
tomb, too, you will see the ostrich feathers,^ which, ac-
SCnCOAT, HELMET, SHIELD, CREST, ETC., OF THE BLACK PRINCE
SUSPENDED OVER HIS TOMB.
cording to the old but doubtful tradition, we are told
he won at Cressy from the blind King of Bohemia, who
perished in the thick of the fight ; and interwoven with
1 The Essay hy the late Sir Harris Nicolas, in the " Archseologia,"
vol. xxxii., gives all that can be said on this disputed question. The
ostrich feathers are first mentioned in 1.369, on the plate of Philippa,
and were used by all the sons of Edward II., and of all subsequent
kings, till the time of Arthur, son of Henry VII., after which they
were appropriated as now to the Prince of Wales. The Black Prince
had sometimes one ostrich feather, sometimes, as on the tomb, three.
The old expl.anation given by Camden was that they indicated Jleet-
ness in discharge of duty. The King of Bohemia's badge was a
vulture.
EFFECTS OF THE PRINCE'S LIFE. 179
them, the famous motto,^ with wliich he used to sign
his name, Houmout, Ich dieiic. If, as seems most
Hkely, they are German words, they exactly express
what we have seen so often in his life, the union of
Hoch Muth, that is, " hi^^h spirit," with Idi dicn, " I
serve." They bring before us the very scene itself after
the battle of Poitiers, where after having vanquished
the whole French nation he stood behind the captive
king, and served him like an attendant.
And, lastly, carved about the tomb, is the long in-
scription, selected ^ by himself before his death, in Nor-
man French, still the language of the court, written,
as he begged, clearly and plainly, that all might read
1 Houmout — Ich dien. It occurs twice as his autograph signature
(see Appendix). But its first public appearance is on the tomb, where
the words ai"e written alternately above the coats of arms, and also on
the quills of the feathers. It is said, though without sufficient proof,
that the King of Bohemia had the motto Ich dien from his following
King Philip as a stipendiary. The Welsh antiquaries maintain that
it is a Celtic and not a German motto, " Behold the man," — the words
used by Edward I. on presenting his first-born sou to the Welsh, and
from him derived to the subsequent Princes of Wales, " Behold the
man," that is, the male child.
- " The epitaph is borrowed, with a few variations, from the anony-
mous French translation of the ' Clericalis Discipliua ' of Petrus Al-
phonsus, composed between the years 1106 and 1110. In the original
Latin work it may be found at p. 196, part i., of the edition printed in
1824 for the Socie'te' des Bibliophiles Fran^ais. The French version is
of the thirteenth century, and entitled ' Castoiement d'un Pere a son
Fils.' It was first printed by Barbazan in 1760, and, more completely,
by Meon in 1808, in whose edition the epitaph may be read (p. 196)
under the heading of ' D'un Philosophe qui passoit parmi un Cimen-
tere.' The Black Prince, however, is not the only distinguished per-
sonage who has availed himself of this inscription ; for more than half
a century previous it was placed (in an abbreviated form) on the monu-
ment of the famous John de Wareime, seventh Earl of Surrey, who
died in 1304, and was buried before the high altar in the priory of
Lewes. It is printed by Dugdale (not very correctly) in his Baronage,
i. 80, from the 'Lewes Cartulary,' which is preserved among the Cot-
tonian MSS. in the British Museum, Vespas. F. xxv." — F. Madden.
CANOPY OF THE BLACK PKINCE's TOMB IN CANTERBURY
CATHEDRAL.
CHIVALRY. 181
it. Its purport is to contrast his former splendor and
vigor and beauty with the wasted body which is now
all that is left. What was a natural thought at all
times was specially characteristic of this period, as we
see from the further exemplification of it in Chichele's
tomb, a hundred years later, where the living man and
the dead skeleton are contrasted with each other in
actual representation. But in this case it would be
singularly affecting, if we can suppose it to have been
written during the four years' seclusion, when he lay
wasting away from his lingering illness, his high for-
tunes overclouded, and death full in prospect.
"When we stand by the grave of a remarkable man,
it is always an interesting and instructive question to
ask, — especially by the grave of such a man and in
such a place, — What evil is there, which we trust is
buried with him in his tomb ; what good is there, which
may still live after him ; what is it that, taking him
from first to last, his life and his death teach us ?
First, then, the thought wdiich we most naturally
connect with the name of the Black Prince is the wars
of the English and French, — the victories of England
over France. Out of those wars much noble feeling
sprang, — feelings of chivalry and courtesy and re-
spect to our enemies, and (perhaps a doubtful boon) of
unshaken confidence in ourselves. Such feelings are
amongst our most precious inheritances, and all honor
be to him who first inspired them in the hearts of his
countrymen, never to be again extinct ! But it is a
matter of still greater thankfulness to remember, as we
look at the worn-out armor of the Black Prince, tliat
those wars of English conquest are buried with him,
never to be revived. Other wars may arise in the un-
182 CHIVALRY.
known future still before us ; but such wars as he and
his father waged, we shall, we may thankfully hope,
see no more again forever. We shall never again see
a King of England or a Prince of Wales taking ad-
vantage of a legal quibble to conquer a great neighbor-
ing country, and laying waste with fire and sword a
civilized kingdom from mere self-aggrandizement. We
have seen how, on the eve of the battle of Poitiers, one
good man, with a patience and charity truly heroic, did
strive, by all that Christian wisdom and forbearance
could urge, to stop that unhallowed warfare. It is a
satisfaction to think that his wish is accomplished, —
that what he labored to effect almost as a hopeless pro-
ject has now wellnigh become the law of the civilized
world. It is true that the wars of Edward III. and
the Black Prince were renewed again on a more fright-
ful scale in the next century, — renewed at the instiga-
tion of an Archbishop of Canterbury, who strove thus
to avert the storm which seemed to him to be threat-
ening the Church ; but these were the last, and the
tomb and college of Chichele are themselves lasting
monuments of the deep remorse for his sin which
smote his declining years. With him finished the
last trace of those bloody wars : may nothing ever
arise, in our time or our children's, to break the bond
of peace between England and Erance, which is the
bond of the peace of the world !
Secondly, he brings be!bre us all that is most charac-
teristic of the ages of chivalry. You have heard of his
courtesy, his reverence to age and authority, his gener-
osity to his fallen enemy. Put before I speak of this
more at length, here also I must in justice remind you
that the evil as well as the good of chivalry was seen
in him, and that this evil, like that which I .spoke of
SACK OF LIMOGES. 183
just now, is also, I trust, buried with liim. One single
instance will show what I mean, in those disastrous
years which ushered in the close of his life, a rebellion
arose in his French province of Gascony, provoked by
his wasteful expenditure. One of the chief towns where
the insurgents held out, was Limoges. The Prince,
though then laboring under his fatal illness, besieged
and took it ; and as soon as it was taken, he gave or-
ders that his soldiers should massacre every one that
they found ; whilst he himself, too ill to walk or ride,
was carried through the streets in a litter, looking on at
the carnage. ]\Ien, women, and children threw them-
selves on their knees, as he passed on through the de-
voted city, crying, " Mercy, mercy ; " but he went on
relentlessly, and the massacre went on, till, struck by
the gallantry of three French knights, whom he saw
fighting in one of the squares against fearful odds, he
ordered it to cease. Now, for this dreadful scene there
were doubtless many excuses, — the irritation of ill-
ness, the affection for his father, whose dignity he
thought outraged by so determined a resistance, and
the indignation against the ingratitude of a city on
which he had bestowed many favors. But what is
especially to be observed is not so much the cruelty
of the individual man as the great imperfection of
that kind of virtue which could allow of such cruelty.
Dreadful as this scene seems to us, to men of that time
it seemed quite natural. The poet who recorded it had
nothing more to say concerning it than that —
" All the townsmen were taken or slain
By the noble Prince of price,
Whereat great joy had all around,
Those who were his friends ;
And his enemies were
Sorely grieved, and repented
That they had begun the war against him."
184 FIRST GREAT ENGLISH CAPTAIN, AND
This strange contradiction arose from one single
cause. The Black Prince, and those who looked up
to him as their pattern, chivalrous, kind, and gen-
erous as they were to their equals and to their imme-
diate dependants, had no sense of what was due to the
poor, to the middle and the humbler classes generally.
He could be touched by the sight of a captive king or
at the gallantry of the three French gentlemen ; but he
had no ears to hear, no eyes to see, the cries and groans
of the fathers and mothers and children, — of the poorer
citizens, who were not bound to him by the laws of
honor and of knighthood. It is for us to remember,
as we stand by his grave, that whilst he has left us the
legacy of those noble and beautiful feelings which are
the charm and best ornaments of life, though not its
most necessary virtues, it is our further privilege and
duty to extend those feelings towards the classes on
whom he never cast a thought ; to have towards all
classes of society, and to make them have towards each
other and towards ourselves, the high respect and cour-
tesy and kindness which were then peculiar to one
class only.
It is a well-known saying in Shakspeare, that —
'• The evil which men do lives after them ;
The good is oft interred with their bones."
But it is often happily just the reverse, and so it was
with the Black Prince. His evil is interred with his
bones ; the good which he has done lives after him,
and to that good let us turn.
He was the first great English captain who showed
what English soldiers were, and what they could do
against Frenchmen and against all the world He
was the first English prince who showed what it was
to be a true gentleman. He was the first, but he was
FIRST ENGLISH GENTLEMAN. 185
not the last. AVe have seen how, when he died, Eng-
lishmen thought that all their hopes had died with him.
But we know that it was not so ; we know that the life of
a great nation is not bound up with the life of a single
man ; we know that the valor and the courtesy and
the chivalry of England are not buried in the grave of
the Plantagenet Prince, It needs only a glance round
the country to see that the high character of an Eng-
lish gentleman, of which the Black Prince was the
noble pattern, is still to be found everywhere ; and has
since his time been spreading itself more and more
through classes which in his time seemed incapable of
reaching it. It needs only a glance down the nave of
our own cathedral ; and the tablets on the walls, with
their tattered Hags, will tell you, in a moment, that he,
as he lies up there aloft, with his head resting on his
helmet and his spurs on his feet, is but the first of a
long line of English heroes, — that the brave men who
fought at Sobraon and Feroozeshah are the true descend-
ants of those who fought at Cressy and Poitiers.
And not to soldiers only, but to all who are engaged
in the long warfare of life, is his conduct an example.
To unite in our lives the two qualities expressed in his
motto, Hock Jlluth and Ich dicn, — "high spirit" and
" reverent service." — is to be, indeed, not only a true
gentleman and a true soldier, but a true Christian also
To show to all who differ from us, not only in war but
in peace, that delicate forbearance, that fear of hurting
another's feelings, that happy art of saying the right
thing to the right person, which he showed to the cap-
tive king, would indeed add a grace and a charm to the
whole course of this troublesome world, such as none
can afford to lose, whether high or low. Happy are
they who having this gift by birth or station use it for
186 THE FIRST GREAT ENGLISH CAPTAIN.
its highest purposes ; still more happy are they who
having it not by birth and station have acquired it, as
it may be acquired, by Christian gentleness and Chris-
tian charity.
And lastly, to act in all the various difficulties of our
every-day life with that coolness and calmness, and
faith in a higher power than his own, which he showed
when the appalling danger of his situation burst upon
him at Poitiers, would smooth a hundred difficulties
and insure a hundred victories. We often think that
we have no power in ourselves, no advantages of posi-
tion, to help us against our many temptations, to over-
come the many obstacles we encounter. Let us take
our stand by the Black Prince's tomb, and go back once
more in thought to the distant fields of France. A
slight rise in the wild upbnd plain, a steep lane through
vineyards and underwood, — this was all that he had,
humanly speaking, on his side ; but he turned it to the
utmost use of which it could be made, and won the
most glorious of battles. So, in like manner, our ad-
vantages may be slight, — hardly perceptible to any but
ourselves, — let us turn them to account, and the re-
sults will be a hundred-fold ; we have only to adopt the
Black Prince's bold and cheering words when first he
saw his enemies, " God is my help, I mud figlit them as
hcst I can;'' adding that lofty yet resigned and humble
prayer which he uttered when the battle was an-
nounced to be inevitable, and which has since become
a proverb, — " God defend the Tights
The Gateway.
APPENDIX AND NOTES.
By MR. ALBERT WAY.
I. — Ordinance by Edward the Black Prince, for the Two
Chantries, founded by him in the Undercroft of
the South Transept, Christ Church, Canterbury.
Recited in the Confirmation by Simon Islip, Arch-
bishop of Canterbury, of the Assent and Ratification
b}^ the Prior and Chapter. Dated August 4, 1363.
Orig. Charter in the Treasury, Canterbury, No. 145.^
Universis sancte matris ecclesie filiis ad quos presentes
litere proveneinnt, Prior et Capituhim ecclesie Christi Can-
tuariensis salutem in omnium Salvatore. Ordinacionem
duarnm Cantariarum in ecclesia predicta fundatarum, unius
videlicet in honore Sancte Trinitatis, et alterius in honore
Virginis gloriose, inspeximus diligenter, Cujus quidera or-
dinacionis tenor sequitur in hec verba. Excellencia principis
a regali descendens prosapia, quanto in sua posteritate am-
plius ditfunditur et honorificencius sublimatur, tanto ad
serviendum Deo prompcior esse debet, et cum devota gra-
ciarum accione capud suum sibi humiliter inclinare, ne aliter
pro ingratitudine tanti muneris merito sibi subtrahatur
beneficium largitiors. Sane nos, Edwardus, Princeps Wallie
1 This document is copied in the Registers B. 2, fo. 46, and F. 8, fo. 83,
vo, under this title, " Littera de Institucione duaruni cantariarum domini
Principis." In the text here given the contracted words are printed in ex-
tenso. I acknowledge with much gratification the privilege liberally granted
to me of examining the ancient charters in the Treasury, amongst which
this unpublished document has been found.
188 OEDINANCE BY THE BLACK PRINCE
et sereiiissimi Principis ac domiui nostri, domini Edwardi
illustris Eegis Auglie, primogenitus, prideni cupientes ad
exaltacionein paterni solii nobis muliereru de geuere suo
clarissimo recipere in sociara et uxorem, denmm post de-
liberaciones varias super diversis nobis oblatis matrimo-
niis, ad nobilem mulierem, dominam Johannam Comitissam
Kancie, consanguineam dicti patris nosti'i et nostram, ipsam
videlicet in secnndo, et nos in tercio consanguinitatis gra-
dibus contingentem, Dei pocius inspirante gracia quam
hominis suasione, convertimus totaliter mentem nostram,
et ipsam, de consensu dicti domini patris nostri et aliorum
parentum nostrorum, dispensacione sedis apostolice super
impedimento hnjusmodi et aliis quibus libet pi'imitus ob-
tenta, preelegimns et assumpsimus in uxorem ; Injuncto
nobis etiam per prius eadem auctoritate apostolica qnod
dnas Cantarias quadraginta jVIarcarum obtentu dispensa-
cionis predicte ad honorem Dei perpetuus faceremus.-^ Xos
vero, in Deo sperantes firmiter per acceptacionem humilem
Injunccionis hnjus, et efficax ipsins complementum nupcias
nostras Deo reddere magis placabiles, et paternum solium
per adeo sibi propinqne sobolis propagacionem condecenter
diffundere et firmius stabilire. ad honorem Sancte Trinitatis,
quam peculiari devocione semper colimus, et beatissime
Marie, et beati Thome Martyris, infra muros ecclesie Christi
Cantuariensis, matris nostre precipue et metropolitis, ad
quam a cunabilis " nostris devocionem mentis ereximus, in
quodam loco ex parte australi ejnsdem ecclesie constituto,
quern ad hoc, de consensu reverendissimi in Christo patris,
domini Simonis Dei gracia Cantuariensis Archiepiscopi,
tocius Anglie Primatis et apostolice sedis Legati, et religi-
osorum virorum Prioris et Capituli ipsius ecclesie, designavi-
mus, duas capellas, quarum una Sancte Trinitatis intitula-
bitur, et altera beate et gloriose Virginis Marie, sub duabus
cantariis duximus construendas, ut sic ad dictam ecclesiam
1 See the Bulls of Pope Innocent VI., concerning the marriage of the
Prince with the Coiintess of Kent, Rymer, Feed, deit 1830, vol. iii. part ii.
pp. 627, 632. 2 Sic in the original.
FOR THE TWO CHANTRIES. 189
confluentes, et capellns nostras intuentes, pro conjugii nostri
prosperitate animarumque nostrarum salute deum exurare
propencius exciteiitur. In nostris vero Cantariis ex nunc
volumus et statuimus, quod sint duo sacerdotes idonei,
sobrii et honesti, nou contenciosi, non querelarum aut litium
assumptores, non incontinentes, aut aliter notabiliter viciosi,
quorum correccio, punicio, admissio et destitucio ad Archi-
episcopum, qiii tempore fuerit, loci diocesanum pertiueat et
debeat pertinere, eorem tamen statum volumus esse per-
petuum, nisi per mensem et amplius a Cantaiiis suis
hujusmodi absque causa racionabili et licencia a domino
Cantuariensi Archiepiscopo, si in diocesi sua presens fuerit,
vel aliter a Priore dicti monasterii, petita pariter et optenta,
absentes fuerint ; vel nisi viciosi et insolentes trina moni-
cione per temporum competencium intervalla, vel aliter
trina correccione emendati, ab insolenciis suis desistere non
curaverint ; quos tunc incorrigibiles seu intolerabiles cense-
mus, et volumus per predictum ordinarium reputari, et
propterea a dicta Cantaria penitus amoveri, nulla appella-
cione aut impetracione sedis Apostolice vel i"egis, aut alii ^
juris communis seu spiritualis remedio amoto hujusmodi
aliqualiter valitura. Primum vero et principaliorem domi-
num Johannem Curteys, de Weldone, et dominum Willel-
mum Bateman, de Giddingg', secundarium, in eisdem nomi-
namias, et constituimus sacerdotes, quorum principalis in
altari Sancte Trinitatis, et alter in altari beate ]\Iarie, cum
per dominum Archiepiscopum admissi fuerint, pro statu
salubri nostro, prosperitate matrimonii nostri, dum vixeri-
mus, et animabus nostris, cum ab hac luce subtract! fueri-
mus, cotidie celebrabunt, nisi infirmitate aut alia causa
racionabili fuerint perpediti. Cum vero alter eorum ces-
serit loco suo, vel decesserit, aut ipsum dimiserit, Nos, Ed-
wardus predictus, in vita nostra, et post mortem nostram
Rex Anglie, qui pro tempore fuerit, ad locum sit vacantem
quern pro tunc secundum censemus quam cicius comode
1 This word is contracted in the original al'. The reading may be alii
or aUter.
190 ORDINANCE BY THE BLACK PRINCE
poterimns, saltern infra unius mensis spaciuni, dicto domino
Archiepiscopo presentabinius et uominabimus ydoneum sa-
cerdotem ; et sic, quocienscunque vacavei-it, imperpetuum
volumus observari. Alioquin elapso hujusmodi tempore
liceat Archiepiscopo ilia vice loco sic vacante de sacerdote
ydoneo providere, salvo jure nostro et successorum nostro-
rum in hac parte, ut prefertur, in pi'oxima vacatione alterius
sacerdotis. Volumns ineuper et ordinamus quod dictus
Archiepiscopus, qui fuerit, significata sibi morte per literas
nostras aut successorum nostrorum liujusmodi vel aliter per
literas Capellani qui supervixerit, aliquo sigillo autentico
roboratas, statim absque inquisicione alia sive difficultate
qualibet presentatum seu nominatum hujusmodi admittat, et
literas suas suo consacerdoti et non alteri super admissione
sua dirigat sive mittat. Dicent vero dicti sacerdotes insimul
matutinas et ceteras boras canonicas in capella, videlicet
sancte 'i'rinitatis, necnon et septem psalmos penitenciales
et quindecim graduales et commendacionem ante prandium,
captata ad hoc una hora vel pluribus, prout viderint expe-
dire. Et post prandium vesperas et completorium necnon
placebo et dirige pro defunctis. Celebrabit insuper uterque
ipsorum singulis diebus prout sequitur, nisi aliqua causa
legitima sicut premittitur fuerint prepediti, unus eorum
videlicet singxdis diebus dominicis de die, si voluerit, vel
aliter de Trinitate, et alter eonmi de officio mortuorum,
vel aliter de beata Virgine Maria. Feria secunda unus de
festo novem lectionum, si acciderit, vel aliter de Angelis,
et alius de officio mortuorum, vel de Virgine gloriosa.
Feria tercia alter eorum de beato Thoma, et alius de beata
Virgine vel officio mortuorum, nisi aliquod festum novem
leccionum advcnerit, tunc enim missa de beato Thoma po-
terit pi'etermitti. Feria quarta, si a festo novem leccio-
num vacaverit, imus de Trinitate et alter de beata Maria
virgine vel officio moi'tuorum. Feria quinta unus de festo
Corporis Christi, et alius de beata Virgine vel officio mor-
tuorum, si a festo novem leccionurn vacaverit. Feria sexta,
si a festo novem leccionum vacaverit, vmus de beata Cruce
FOR THE TWO CHANTRIES. 191
et alter do beata A'irgiue vel officio mortuorum. Singulis
diebus sabbati, si a festo novem leccionem vacaverit, unus
de beata Yirgiue et alter de officio mortuorum. Et hoc
modo celebrabunt singulis diebus imperpetuum, et iiou
celebrabunt simul et eadem hora, sed uuus post alium,
successive. Ante vero introitum missi quilibet rogabit et
rogari publico faciat celebraus pro statu salubri utriusque
nostrum dum vixerimus, et pro animabus nostris, cum ab
hac luce migraverimus, et dicet Pater et Ave, et in singulis
missis suis dum vixerimus de quocunque celebraverint col-
lectam illam, — "Deuscujus misericordie non est numerus,"
et, cum ab hac miseria decesserimus, — " Deus venie lar-
gitor," cum devocione debita recitabunt. Et volumus quod
post missas suas vel ante, secundum eorum discrecionem
difFerendum vel anticipandum, cum doctor aut lector alius
in claustro monachorum more solito legerit ibidem, nisi
causa legitima prepediti fuerint, personaliter intersint, et
doctrine sue corditer intendant, ut sic magis edocti Deo
devocius et perfectius obsequantur. Principali vero sacer-
dote de medio sublato, aut aliter loco suo qualitercumque
vacante, socius suus, qui tunc superstes fuerit, sicut pre-
diximus locum Principaliorem occupabit, et secundum lo-
cum tenebit novus assumendus. Ordinamus etiani quod
dicti sacerdotes singulis annis semel ad minus de eadem
secta vestiantur, et quod non utantur brevibus vestimentis
sed talaribus secundum decenciam sui status. Pro mora
siquidem dictorum sacerdotum assignavimus quemdam habi-
tacionis locum juxta Elemosinariam dicti Monasterii, in quo
construetur ad usum et habitacionem eorum una Aula com-
munis in qua simul cotidianam sument refeccionem, una
cum quadam Camera per Cancellum dividenda, ita quod in
uti-aque parte sic divisa sit locus sufficiens pro uno lecto
competenti, necnon et pro uno camino nostris sumptibus
erigendo. Ita tameu quod camera hujusmodi unicum ha-
beat ostium pro Capellanorum ingressu et egressu. Cujus
locum divisum viciniorem principaliori sacerdoti intitulari
volumus et mandamus ; sub qua Camera officia eis utilia
192 ORDINANCE BY THE BLACK PRINCE
constituent prout eis magis vidcbitur expedire. Coquinam
etiam habebunt competentem ; quas quidem domus nostris
primo sumptibus construendas prefati religiosi viri, Prior et
Capitulum, quociens opus fuerit, reparabunt ac eciam re-
formabinit. De liabitacione vero ipsorum hujusniodi libe-
rum habebunt ingressum ad dictas capellas, et regressum
Ijro temporibus et horis coinpetentibus, ac retroactis tempo-
ribus pro ingressu seculariuni consuetis. Comedent eciam
insimul in Aula sua cum perfecta fuerit, in ipsorum quo-
que cameris, et non alibi, requiescent. Ad hec dicti
sacerdotes vestimenta et alia ornamcnta dicte Capelle as-
signanda fideliter conservabunt, et cum niundacioue aut
reparacione aliqua indigeriut, predicti religiosi viri, Prior
et Capitulum suis sumptibus fjxcient reparari, et alia nova
quociens opus fuerit inveteratis et inutilibus subrogabunt.
Percipiet quidem uterque eorundem sacerdotum annis sin-
gulis de ^ Priore et Capitulo supradictis viginti marcas ad
duos anni terminos, videlicet, ad festa sancti Michaelis et
.Pasche, per equales porciones, necnon ab eisdem Priore
et Capitulo ministrabitur ipsis Capellanis de pane, vino, et
cera, ad snfficienciam, pro divinis officiis celebrandis. Ita
videlicet quod in matutinis, vesperis et horis sit continue
cereus unus accensus, et missa quacumque duo alii cerei ad
utrumque altai'e predictum. Quod si prefati Prior et Capi-
tulum dictas pecunie summas in aliquo dictorum termi-
norum, ccssante causa legitima, solvere distulerint ultra
triginta dies ad majus, extunc sint ipso facto ab execucione
divinorum officiorum, suspensi, quousque ipsis Capellanis de
arreragiis fuerit plenarie satisfactum. Pro supportacione
vero predictorum onerum dictis Priori et Capitulo, ut pre-
mittitur, incumbencium, de licencia excellentissimi Principis
domini patris nostri supradicti dedimus, conccssimus et
assignavimus eisdem Priori et Capitulo, eorumque succes-
soribus, manerium nostrum de Faukeshalle juxta London',
prout in cartis ejusdem patris nostri et nostris plenius
continetur. Jurabit insuper uterque eorundem sacerdotum
1 In the original, et Priore,
FOR THE TWO CHANTRIES. 193
coram domino Archiepiscopo, qui pro tempore fuerit, iu ad-
missione sua, quod banc ordinaciouem nostram observabit
et faciet, quantum einii concernit et sibi facultas prestabitur,
in omnibus observari. Juralnmt insuper iidem sacerdotes
Priori dicti Loci obedienciam, et quod nullum dampnum
inferent dicto monasterio vel personis ejusdem injuriam seu
gravamen, lliirsum, si in prescnti nostra ordinacione pro-
cessu temporis inveniatur aliquod dabium seu obscurum,
illud interpretandi, innovandi, corrigendi et eidem ordina-
cioni nostre addendi, diminuendi et declarandi, nobis quam-
diu vixerimus, et post mortem nostram reverendo patri,
domino Archiepiscopo Cantuariensi, qui pro tempore fuerit,
specialiter reservamus.-^ Cui quidem ordinacioni sic salu-
briter composite et confccte tenore presencium nostrum
prebemus assensum, onera nobis in eadem imposita agnos-
cimus, et cetera in eadem ordinacione contenta, quantum
ad nos attinet vel attinere in futurum potent, approbamus,
ratiticamus, et eciam confirmamus. In quorum omnium
testimonium sigillum nostrum commune presentibus est
appensum. Datum in domo nostra Capitulari Cantuar' ij".
Xon' Augusti, Anno domini Millesimo Trescentesimo sexa-
gesimo tercio. Et nos, Simon, permissione divina Archi-
episcopus Cautuariensis, supradictus, permissa omnia et
singula quatenus ad nos attinet autorizamus, approbamus,
ratificamus et tenore presencium auctoritate nostra ordinaria
confirmamus. In cujus rei testimonium sigillum nostrum fe-
cimus hiis apponi. Datum eciam Cantuar' die, anno et loco
supi'adictis, et nostre consecracionis anno quartodecimo.
(L. S. Seal lost.)
Endorsed. — Confirmacio Archiepiscopi et Conventus super
Cantai'ias Edwardi principis Wallie in ecclesia nostra in
criptis.2 In a later hand, — Duplex.
1 The word jus seems to be omitted in this sentence, of which the sense
as it stands is incomplete. Here the recital of the Ordinance ends.
2 This document bears the following numbers, by which it has been
classed at various times: 45 (erased.) — Duplex vi. (erased) A — C. 166.
— C. 145; tlie latter being the right reference, according to the Indices now
in use.
13
194 WILL OF THE BLACK PKINCE.
IL — THE WILL OF EDWARD PRINCE OF WALES,
A. D. 1376.1
CopiA Testamenti Frincipis Wall'.
{Reyister of Archbishop Sudbury, in the Registry at Lambeth, Jhl. 90 6,
and 91 a and b.)
En noun du Pere, du Filz, et de Saint Espirit, Amen. K^ous,
Ednuard, eisne filz du Roy d'Engletere et de Fraunce, prince
de Gales, due de Cornwaille, et counte de Cestre, le vij. jour
de Juyn, I'an de grace mil troiscentz septantz et sisme, en
notre chambre dedeyns le palois de notre tresredote seig-
nour et pere le Roy k West'm esteantz en bon et sain me-
moire, et eiantz consideracion a le brieve duree de humaine
freletee, et come non certeiu est le temps de sa resolucion a,
la divine volunte, et desiranz toujourz d'estre prest ove
I'eide de dieu a sa disposicioun, ordenons et fesons notre
testament en la manere qe ensuyt. Primerement nous
devisons notre alme a Dieu notre Creatour, et a la seinte
benoite Trinite et a la glorieuse virgine Marie, et a tons lez
sainz et seintez ; et notre corps d'estre enseveliz en I'eglise
Cathedrale de la Trinite de Canterbirs, ou le corps du vray
mai'tir monseignour Seint Tliomas repose, en mylieu de la
chapelle de notre dame Under Crofte, droitement devant
I'autier, siqe le bout de notre tombe devers les pees soit dix
peez loinz de I'autier, et qe mesme la tombe soit de marbre
de bone masouerie faite. Et volons qe entour la ditte tombe
soient dusze escuchons de latone, chacun de la largesse d'un
pie, dont les syx seront de noz armez entiers, et les autres six
1 The following document was printed by Mr. Nichols in his " Collec-
tion of Royal Wills," i>. 66. It is here given with greater accuracy,
through careful collation of the transcript in Archbishop Sudbury's Reg-
ister at Lambeth. The remarkable interest of the will as connected with
the Prince's interment and tomb at Canterbury may fully justify its
reproduction in this volume.
WILL OF THE BLACK PRINCE. 195
des plumz d'ostruce, et qe sur chacun escucbon soit escript,
c'est assaveir sur cellez de noz armez et sur les autres des
plumes d'ostruce, — Houmout.^ Et paramont '^ la tombe soit
fait un tablement de latone suzorrez de largesse et longure
de meisme la tombe, sur quel uouz volons qe un ymage
d'overeigne levez de latouu suzorrez soit mys en memorial
de nous, tout armez de fier de guerre de nous armez quar-
tillez et le visage mie, ove notre heaume du leopard mys
dessouz la teste del ymage, Et volons qe sur notre tombe
en lieu ou len le purra plus clerement lire en veoir soit es-
cript ce qe ensuit, en la uuuiere qe sera mielz avis a noz
executours : —
Tu qe passez ove bouehe close, par la ou cest corps repose
Euteiit ce qe te dirray, sicuuie te dire la say,
Tiel come tu es, Je au ciel '^ fu, 'I'u seras tiel come Je su,
De la mort ue pensay je mie, Taut come j'avoy la vie.
Eu terre avoy graud richesse, dout Je y fys grand uoblesse,
Terre, mesous, et grand tresor, draps, chivalx, argeut et or.
Mes ore su je povres et clieitifs, perfoud en la terre gys,
Ma grand beaute est tout alee, Ma char est tout gastee.
Moult est estroite ma meson, Kn moy ua si verite non,
Et si ore me veissez, Je ue quidf pas qe \ous deeisez,
Qe j'eusse onqes hom este, si sn je ore de tout chane:ee.
Pur Uieu pries au celestien * Roy, qe mercy eit de I'arme^ de moy
1 The escutcheons on the Prince's tomb are not in conformity with these
directions. Over those charged with his arms appears the word houmout
on a little scroll, whilst over those bearing the three ostrich feathers is the
motto, ich diene. There is probably an omission in the transcript of this
passage in the Lambeth Register. The reading in the original document
may have been, " Sur cellez de noz armez — ich diene — est sur les autres
des plumes d'ostruce — houmout." Representations of these escutcheons
as also of the altar tomb, showing their position, were given, with the
beautiful etchings of the figure of the Prince, in Stotliard's Monumental
Effigies. Representations on a larger scale will be found in the notes
subjoined. See pages 207, 208.
2 " Par-amont, en haut." — Roquefort.
3 Thus in the manuscript. On the tomb the reading here is autiel ;
doubtless the word intended. " Auteil ; pared, de meine.'' — Roquefort.
* The correct reading may be celestieu, Roquefort gives both celestiau
and celestien.
5 Thus written, as likewise on the tomb. Roquefort gives " Arme ;
ame, esprit," etc.
196 WILL OF THE BLACK PEINCE.
Tout cil qe jHir moi prieroiit, oa a Dieu m'acorderoiit,
Dieu les inette eu sou parays,^ {sic) on uul ue poet estre cheitifs.^
Et volons qe a quele heure qe iiutre corps soit amewez par
my la ville de Caiiterbirs tantqe a la priorie, qe deux destrex
covertz de noz arniez, et deux honimez armez en noz armez
et en noz heaumes voisent devant dit notre corps, c'est assa-
voir, I'uu pur la guerre de noz armez entiers quartellez, et
I'autre pur la paix de noz bages des plumes d'ostruce ove
quatre baueres de mesme la sute, et qe chacum de ceux qe
porteront lez ditz baneres ait sur sa teste un chapeu de noz
amies. Et qe cell qe sera ai'mez pur la guerre ait un homme
armez portant a pres li un penon de noir ove plurnes d'ostruce.
Et volons qe lu herce soit fait entre le haut autier et le cuer,
dedeyns le quel nous voloms qe notre corps soit posee, tant-
qe les vigiliez, messes et les divines services soient faites ;
lesquelx services ensi faitez, soit notre corps portes en I'avant
dite chappelle de notre dame ou il sera ensevillez. Item, nous
donnons et devisoms al haut autier de la dite eglise notre
vestement de velvet vert embroudez d'or, avec tout ce qe
apperptient (sic) au dit vestement. Item, deux bacyns d'or
lui chalix avec le patyn d'or, noz armez graves sur le pie, et
deux cruetz d'or, et un ymage de la Trinite a mettre sur le
dit autier, et noti-c grande croix d'argent suzorrez et enamel-
lez, c'est assavoir la meliour croix qe nous avons d'argent ;
toutes lesqueles chosez nouz donnons et devisons au dit au-
tier a y servir perpetuelement, sainz jammes le mettre en
autre oeps pur nul mischiefs. Item, nous donnons et devi-
soiis al autier de notre dame en la chappelle surdite notre
blank vestiment tout entier diapree d'une vine ^ d'azure, et
1 Mr. Nichols printed this word paradys as Weever, Dart, Sandford,
and others had given it. On the tomb the reading is ixvray, which usu-
ally signifies in old French, paroi, mur, Lat. paries. Compare Roque-
fort, " Paradis, parehids, parvis, place qui est devant line eglise, etc.,
en has Lat. parvisius."
2 The inscription as it actually appears on the tomb is not liteially in
accordance with the transcript here given, but the various readings are not
of importance. The inscription is given accurately by Mr. Kempe in the
account of the tomb, in Stothard's Monumental Effigies.
3 This word is iirinted by Mr. Nichols tine. The wliite tissue was
WILL or THE BLACK PRINCE. 197
fiuxi Ivi iroutel qe Fevesqe d'Excestre nous donna, q'est de I'as-
suinpcion de uotre dame en mylieu severee d'or et d'autre
ymagerie, et un tabernacle de russumpcioun de notre dame,
qe le dit evesqe nous donna auxi, et deux graudez chande-
labres d'argent qe sont tortillez, et deux bacyns de noz armez
et un grand chalix suzorre et enameillez des armez de Gar-
renne, ove deux cruetz taillez come deux angeles, pur servir
a mesme I'autier perpetuelement, sainz jamez le mettre en
autre oeps pur nul meschief. Item, nous donnons et devi-
sons notre sale ^ des plumes d'ostruce de tapicerie noir et la
bordure rouge, ove cignes ove testez de dames, cest assavoir
un dossier, et huyt pieces pur lez costers, et deux banqueres,
a la dit esglise de Canterbirs. Et volons qe le dossier soit
taillez ensi come mielz sera avis a noz executours pur servir
devant et entour le haut autier, et ce qe ne busoignera a
servir illec du remenant du dit dossier, et auxi Ics ditz ban-
queres, volons qe soit departiz a servir devant I'autier la ou
monseignour saint Thomas gist, et a I'autier la ou la teste
est, et a, I'autier la ou la poyute de I'espie est, et entour
notre corps en la dite chappelle de notre dame Undercrofte,
si avant come il purra suffiere. Et voloms qe les costres de
la dit Sale soient pur pendre en le quer tout du long para-
mont les estallez, et en ceste manere ordenons a servir et
estre user en memorial de nous, a la feste de la Trinite, et
a toutz lez principalez festes de I'an, et a lez festes et jour
de Monseignour saint Thomas, et a toutez lez festes de notre
dame, et les jnurs auxi de notre anniversaire perpetuelement,
tant come ils purront durer sainz jamez estre mys en autre
oeps. Item, nous donnons et devisons a notre chapelle de
ceste noti'e dite dame Undercrofte, en la quele nous avoms
fondes une chanterie de deux chapellayns a chanter pur nous
perpetuelement, nostre missal et nostre portehors, lesquelx
probably diapered with a trailing or branched pattern in azure, in form of
a vine.
1 A complete set of hangings for a chamber was termed a "Hall " (sal/'),
and by analogy a large tent or pavilion formed of several pieces was called a
" Hall ;" the hanging'^ ('iidea) were also called " Hallynges."
198 WILL OF THE BLACK PRINCE.
nous mesmesavons fait fuire et eiilimyner de noz armures en
diversez lieiix, et auxi de uus bages dez plumes d'ostruce ; et
ycelx missal et portehors ordeuons a servir perpetuelement
en la dite chappelle sainz James le mettre en autre oeps pur
nul meschief ; et de toutez cestes choses chargeons les amies
des Priour et Convent de la dite eglise, sicome ils vorront re-
spondre devant Dieu. Item, nous donnons et divisons a la dite
chappelle deux vestementz sengles, cest assavoir, aube, amyt,
chesyble, estole et tanon, avec tovvaille covenables a chacum
des ditz vestementz, a servir auxi en la dite chapelle perpet-
uelement. Item, nous donnons et devisons notre grand table
d'or et d'argent tout pleyn dez preoieuses reliques, et en my
lieu un croix de ligno sancte crucis, et la dite table est garniz
di perres et de perles, c'est assavoir, vingt cynq baleis, trent
quatre safirs, cinquant oyt perles grosses, et plusours autres
safirs, emeraudes et perles petitz, a la haut autier de notre
meson d'Assherugge q'est de notre fundacioun,^ a servir per-
petuelement an dit autier, sanz jamez le mettre en autre
oeps pur nul meschief; et de ce chargeons les ai'mes du
Rectour et du Convent de la dite meson a respondre devant
Dieu. Item, nous donnons et devisons le remenant de touz
1 Mr. Nichols .supposes this to be the Augustine College at Ashridge,
Bucks, founded by Edmund, Earl of Cornwall, about 1283, but he was un-
able to trace any part taken by the Black Prince in the affairs of that
house. In the last edition of Dugdale's Monasticon, vi. 515, it is stated
that a copy of the statutes given to this house about a century after the
foundation is preserved at Ashridge House. These, therefore, may have
been given in the times of the Black Prince.
A copy of the Ashridge Statutes is now at A.shridge ; the originals being
in the Episcopal Registry of Lincoln. They hear date April 20, 1-376, just
before the Prince's death. He is expressly called the founder ; and the
reason given is, that he granted money for the maintenance of twenty
brethren, — which was the number of the original foundation, thoiigh, owing
to want of funils, seven priests only had been hitlierto on the list. Arch-
deacon Todd (in a privately printed history of Berkhamstead) observes
that there is a similar instance of the Prince claiming as his own founda-
tion what was really founded by the Earl of Cornwall at Wallingford, which
the Prince calls •'' notre chapelle," though he only re-established it.
For this information T am indebted to the Rev. J. W. Cobb, formerly
curate of Berkhamstead.
WILL OF THE BLACK PRINCE. 199
noz vestimentz, draps d'or, le tabernacle de la Resurree-
cioun, deux cixtes ^ d'argent siizorrez et enameillez d'une
sute, croix, chalix cruetz, chandelabres, bacjns, liveres, et
touz noz autrez ornementz appetenantz a seinte eglise, a
notre chapelle de saint Nicholas dedeynz notre chastel de
Walyngforde,^ a y servir et demurer perpetuelement, sanz
jamez le mettre eu autre oeps ; et de ceo chargeons les
armes des doien et souz doyen de la dite chapelle a respon-
dre devant Dieu, horspris toutesfoiz le vestement blu avec
rosez d'or et plumes d'ostruce, liquel vestement tout entier
avec tout ce qe appertient a ycelle nous donnons et devisons
a notre filz Richard, ensemble avec le lit qe nous avons de
mesme la sute et tout I'apparaille du dit lit, lequele notre
tresredote seignour et pere le Roy nous donna. Item, nous
donnons et devisons a notre dit filz notre lit palee de baude-
kyn et de camaca rouge q'est tout novel, avec tout ce qe
appertient au dit lit. Item, nous donons et devisons a
notre dit filz notre grand lit des angeles enbroudez, avec
les quissyns, tapitz, coverture, linceaux et tout entierement
I'autre apparalle appertienant au dit lit. Item, nous don-
nons et devisons a notre dit filz la Sale d'arras du pas de
Saladyn, et auxi la Sale de Worstede embroudez avec mer-
myns de mier, et la bordure de rouge de noir pales et em-
broudes de cignes ove testez de dames et de plumes d'ostruce,
lesqueles Sales nous volons qe notre dit filz ait avec tout ce
qe appartient a ycelle. Et quant a notre vesselle d'argent,
porce qe nous pensons qe nous receumes avec notre com-
paigne la princesse au temps de notre manage, jusqes a la
value de sept centz marcs d'esterlinges de la vesselle de
notre dit compaigne, Nous volons qe elle ait du notre tantqe
a la dite value ; et du remenant de notre dit vesselle nous
volons qe notre dit filz ait unepartie covenable pur son estat,
solonc I'avis de noz executours. Item, nous donnons et devi-
1 Cistes, cistce, shrines.
2 Of this collegiate chapel, see the last edition of Dngdale's Monasticon,
vi. 1330. In 1356 tlie Prince had granted to it the advowson of the church
of Harewell, Berkshire.
•200 WILL OF THE BLACK PKINCE.
sons a notre dit compaigne la princesse la Sale de Wurstede
rouge d'egles et griffons embrcudez, avec la bordare de cignes
ove testes de dames. Item, nons devisoms a Sire Roger de
Claryndone ^ un lit de soie solonc I'avis de noz executours,
avec tout ce qe appertient au dit lit. Item, nous donnons
et devisons a Sire Robert de Walsham notre confessour un
grand lit de rouge camoca avec noz armes embrondes a
checum cornere, et le dit Camaka est diapreez en li mesmes
des armes de Hereford, avec le celure entiere, curtyns, quis-
syns, traversin, tapitz de tapiterie, et tout entierment I'autre
apparaille. Item, nous donnons et devisons a. mons'r Alayn
Cheyne notre lit de camoca blank poudres d'egles d'azure,
c'est assavoir, quilte, dossier, celure entiere, curtyns, quis-
syns, traversyn, tapiz, et tout entierement I'autre apparaille.
Et tout le remenant de noz biens et chateaux auxi bien
vessel d'or et joialx come touz autere biens ou q'ils soieut,
outre ceux qe nous avons dessuz donnes et devisez come dit
est, auxi toutez maneres des dettes a nous duex, en queconqe
manere qe ce soit, ensemble avec touz les issuez et profitz qe
purront sourdre et avenir de touz nos terrez et seignouries,
par trois ans a pres ce qe dieux aura faite sa volonte de nous,
lesquelx profitz notre dit seignour et pere nous a ottroiez pur
paier noz dettetz. Nous ordenons et devisoms si bien pur les
despenz funerales qe convenront necessairement estre faites
pur nostre estat, come pur acquiter toutez noz dettez par les
mains de noz executours, sique ils paient primerement les dis
despencz funerales, et apres acquiptent principalement toutez
les debtes par nous loialement dehues. Et cestes choses et
perfoui'mez come dit est si rien remeint de noz ditz biens et
chateaux, nous volons qe adonqes noz ditz executours solonc
la quantite enguerdonnent noz povres servantz egalement
1 Sir Roger was a natural son of the Prince, bom prohal)]y at Clarendon,
and thence named. See Sandford, Geneal. Hist., p. 189. He was made one
of the knights of the chamber to his half-brother, Richard II., who granted
to him an annuity of £100 per anmim. in 1389. He bore Or, on a bend, Sa,
three ostrich feathers .,4rf7. ,the quills transfixed through as many scrolls
of the first.
WILL OF THE BLACK PRINCE. 201
selonc leur degreez et desertes si avunt come ils puiTont
avoir informacione de ceiix qe en ont melliour cognissance,
si come ils en vovront respondre devant Dieu au jour de
Juggement, on mil ne sera jngge qe un seul. Et quant a
les annuytes qe nous avons dounes a noz chivalers, esquiers,
et autres noz servitours, en gueredon des services q'ils nous
ont fait et des travalx q'ils ont eeu entonr nous, notre en-
tiere et darriene volunte est qe les dictes annuytees estoisent,
et qe touz ceux asquelx nous les avons donnes en soient bien
et loialernent serviz et paiez, solonc le purport de notre doun
et de noz letres quels en ont de nous. Et chargeoms notre
filz Richard sur notre beneson de tenir et confermer a che-
ciim quantqe nous lour avons ensi donnez, et si avant come
Dieu nous a donnez poair sur notre dit filz nouz li donuons
notre malison s"il empesche on soeftre estre empesches en
quantqe en il est notre dit doun. Et de cesj notre testa-
ment, liqnel nous volons estre tenuz et perfourmez pur notre
darreine volunte, fesons et ordenons noz executors notre tres-
cher et tresame frere d'Espaigne, Due de Lancastre, les rev-
erenz peres en Dieu, William Evesqe de Wyncestre,^ Johan
Evesqe de Bathe,^ William Evesqe de Saint Assaphe,^ notre
trescher en Dieu sire Robert de Walsham notre confessour,
Hughe de Segrave Senescal de noz terres, Aleyn de Stokes,
et Johan de Fordham ; lesquelx nous prioms, requerons et
chargeoms de executer et acomplir loialment toutez les
choses susdites. En tesmoignance de toutez et checunes les
choses susdites nous avons fait mettre a cest notre testament
et darreine volunte nous prive et secree sealx,* et avons
1 Willinm of Wykeham, Bishop of Winchester. 1367-1404.
2 John Harewell, Cliancellor of Gascony and Chaplain to the Prince,
was Bishop of Batl), 1-366-1386.
8 William de Springlington was appointed Bisliop of St. Asaph, Feb. 4,
1376, in the same year that the Prince's will is dated.
■* This expression deserves notice, as showing the distinction hptween the
Sigillum privatum and the secretmn. The seals of the Black Prince are
numerous ; eight are described by Sir H. Nicolas in his Memoir (Archso-
logia, xxxi. 361), but none of them are identified with the seals above
mentioned. The secree seal was doubtless the same kind of seal described
202 WILL OF THE BLACK PRINCE.
auxi commandez notre notair dessous escript de mettre iiotre
dite darriere volunte et testament en fourme publique, et de
soy souz escviere et le signer et mercher de son signe acns-
tumez, en tesmoignance de toutez et checunes les choses
dessusdictes.
Et ego, Johannes de Ormeshevede, clericns Kadiolensis
diocesis publicus autoritate apostolica No|arius, premissis
omnibus et singulis dum sic ut premittitur sub anno Dom-
ini Millesimo, ccc. septuagesimo sexto, Indictione quarta-
decima, pontificatus sanctissimi in Christo patris et domini
nosti'i domini Gregorii, divina providentia pape, undecinii,
anno sexto, mense, die et loco predictis, pi'edictum metuen-
dissimum dominnm meum principem agerentur et fierent,
presentibns reverendo in Christo patre domino Johanne
Herefordensi Episcopo, dominis Lodewico de Clifford, Nicho-
lao Bonde, et Nicholao de Scharnesfelde, militibus, et domino
Willelmo de Walsham clerico, ac aliis pluribus militibus,
clericis et scutiferis, unacum ipsis presens fui eaque sic fieri
vidi et audivi, et de mandato dicti domini mei principis scripsi,
et in banc publicam formani redegi, signoque meis et nomine
consuetis signavi rogatus in fidem et testimonium omnium
premissorum, constat michi notario predicto de interlinear' ha-
rum dictionum — tout eat, per me fact, superius approbando.
Probatio dicti Testamenti coram Simone Cantuar' Ar-
chiepiscopo, iv. Idus Junii, M.ccc.lxxvj. in camera infra
scepta domus fratrum predicatorum conventus London'.
Nostre Translationis anno secundo.
A marginal note records that John, Bishop of Durham,
and Alan Stokes, executors of the will, had rendered their
account of the goods, and have a full acquittance as also
in other instances as the Privy Signet. The will of Edward III. was sealed
" sigillo privato et signeto nostris," with the Great Seal in confirmation.
Richard II. on his deposition took from his finger a ring of gold of his own
Privy Signet, and put it on the Dnke of Lancaster's finger. The will of
Henry V. was sealed with the Great and Privy Seals and the Privy Signet.
7omb of the Black Prince.
NOTES ON THE WILL. 203
another acquittance from the Prior and Chapter of Christ
Church, Canterbury, for the legacies bequeathed to that
church, as appears in the Register of WilHam (Courtenay)
Archbishop of Canterbury, under the year 1386.
NOTES ON THE WILL OF EDWARD PRINCE OF
WALES.
In perusing the foregoing document, so characteristic of
the habitual feelings and usages of the times, and of deep
intei'est in connection with the history of the Prince, we
cannot fiiil to remark with surprise the deviation from his
last wishes in regard to the position of his tomb. The
instructions here minutely detailed were probably written,
from his own dictation, the day previous to his decease ; ^
and it were only reasonable to conclude that injunctions
so solemnly delivered would have been fulfilled with scru-
pulous precision by the executors even in the most minute
particulars. We are unal)le to suggest any probable ex-
planation of the deviations which appear to have taken
place ; neither the chronicles of the period nor the rec-
ords of the Church of Canterbury throw light upon the
subject.
According to the instructions given by the Prince, the
corpse on reaching the church was for a time to be depos-
ited on a hearse, or temporary stage of framework, to be
constructed between the high altar and the choir, — namely,
in that part of the fabric designated by Professor Willis as
tlie presbytery, parallel with the eastern transepts. There
it was to remain, surrounded doubtless by the torches and
1 The day given in the printed text of Walsingham, Hist. Angl., p. 190,
as that of the Prince's death, namely, Jnly 8, is obviously incorrect. It
is singular that Mr. Nicliols should have followed this inadvertent error.
(Royal Wills, p. 77.) Trinity Sunday in the year 1376 fell on June 8 ; and
that is the day stated in tlie inscription on the tomb to have been that on
which the Prince died.
204 KOTES OX THE WILL.
all the customary finieral pageantiy of the hearse, uutil the
vigils, masses, and divine services were completed. The
remains of the Prince were then to be conveyed to the
Chapel of our Lady Under Cioft, and theie interred ; it is
further enjoined that the foot of the tomb should be ten
feet from the altar. If therefore it may be assumed, as
appears highly probable, that the position of that chapel
and altar at the period in question was identical with that
of the Lady Chapel, of which we now see the remains in the
centre of the crypt, it would appear that the site selected
by Edward as his last resting-place v»'as situated almost pre-
cisely below the high- altar in the choir above. It is obvi-
ous that the screen-work and decorations of the chapel,
now existing in a very dilapidated condition, ai'e of a period
subsequent to that of the Prince's death ; and some have
attributed the work to Archbishop Morton, towards the
close of the fifteenth century. This, it will be remembei-ed,
is the Chapel of Our Lady, the surpi'ising wealth of which
is described by Erasmus, who by fiivor of an introduction
from Archbishop Warham was admitted within the iron
screens by which the ti'easure was strongly guarded.-^
Here, then, in the obscurity of the crypt, and not far
distant from the chantries which the Prince at the time of
his marriage had founded in the Under Croft of the south
transept, was the spot where Edward enjoined his executors
to construct his tomb. It were vain to conjecture, in de-
fault of any evidence on the subject, to what cause the de-
viation from his dying wishes was owing ; what difficulties
may have been found in the endeavor to carry out the in-
terment in the crypt, or what arguments may have been
used by the prior and convent to induce the executors to
place the tomb in the more conspicuous and sightly position
1 Pilgrimage to St. Thomas of Canterbury, translated by John G.
Nichols, p. 56. An interior view of this chapel is given by Dart, pi. ix.,
showing also the large slab in the pavement once encrusted with an effigy
of brass, sometimes supposed to cover the burial-place of Archbishop
Morton.
NOTES OX THE WILL. 205
above, near the shrine of St. Thomas, in the Chapel of
the Trinit}", where it is actually to be seen.^
The instructions given by the Prince for the solemn
pageant present a striking and characteristic picture of his
obsequies, as the procession passed through the West Gate
and along the High Street towards tlie cathedral. He en-
joined that two chargers (dextrarii), with trappings of his
iirms and badges, and two men accoutred in his panoply
and wearing his helms should precede the corpse. One
cheval de dale is often mentioned in the splendid funer-
als of former times. In this instance thei'e were two ; one
of them bearing the equipment of war, with the quarterly
bearings of France and England, as seen upon the effigy of
Edward, and upon the embroidered surcoat still suspended
over it. The array of the second was directed to be inir la
paix, de noz hages des 2^h''nies d'ostruce ; namely, that wliich
the Prince had used in the lists and in the chivalrous
exercises of arms distinguished from actual warfare, and
termed kastiludia pacifica, or"justes of peas." "■^ Four sa-
ble banners of the same suit, with the ostrich plumes,
accompanied this noble pageant, and behind the war-horse
followed a man armed, bearing a pennon, likewise charged
with osti'ich plumes. This was the smaller flag, or streamer,
attached to the warrior's lance ; and it may here, probably,
be regarded as representing that actually carried in the
field by the Prince.^
1 The supposition that the tomb of the Prince might have been origi-
nally i)lace(l in tlie crypt, and removed subsequently into the Chapel of the
Trinity, may appear very improbable. Yet it may be observed tliat the
iron railings around the monuments of Edward and of Henry IV. are ap-
parently of the same age, and wrought by the same workman, as shown
by certain ornamental details. This might seem to sanction a conjecture
that the two tombs had been placed there sinniltaneously, that of the
Prince having possibly been moved thither from the Under Croft when the
memorial of Henry was erected.
2 See the curious documents and memoir relating to the peaceable Justs
or Tiltings of the Middle Ages, by Mr. Douce, Archreologia, xvii. 290.
3 A remarkable illustration of these instructions in Edward's will is
supplied by an ilhimination in the " Metrical History of the Deposition of
206 NOTES ON THE WILL.
There can be little doubt that on the beam above the
Prince's tomb at Cantei'bury there were originally placed
two distinct atchevements, composed of the actual accou-
trements, p»r la guerre and j^ur la paix, wliich had figured
in these remarkable funeral impersonations. It was the cus-
tom, it may be observed, when the courser and armor
of the deceased formed part of a funeral procession, that
the former was regarded as a mortuary due to the church
in which the obsequies were performed, but the armor was
usually hung up near the tomb. There may still be noticed
two iron standards on the beam above mentioned, now bear-
ing the few remaining reliques of these atchevements.
One of these standards probably supported the embroidered
armorial surcoat, or "coat of worship," by which Edward
had been distinguished in the l)attle-field, charged with the
bearings of France and England, his helm, his shield of war,
likewise displaying the same heraldic ensigns, and the other
appliances of actual warfare. The second trophy was doubt-
less composed of his accoutrements for the joust, characterized
not by the proper charges of heraldry, but by his favorite
badge of the ostrich feather, the origin of which still perplexes
the antiquary. Conformably, moreover, to such arrangement
of the twofold atchevements over the tomb, the escutcheons
affixed to its sides are alternately of war and peace ; namely,
charged with the quarterly bearing, and with the feathers
on a sable field.
In regard to these richly enamelled escutcheons the
Prince's instructions were given with much precision. They
were to be twelve in number, eacii a foot wide, formed of
latten or hard brass ; six being de nos armez entiers, and the
remainder of ostrich feathers ; et qe sur chacnn escuc/ion,
soit escript, c'est assavier sur cellez de nos armez et sur les aidres
des plumes d'ostruce, — Houmo^it. Here, again, the tomb pre-
Richard II.," where that king appears witli a black surcoat powdered with
ostrich plumes, his horse in trappings of the same, and a pennon of the
like badge carried behind him. Richard is represented in the act of confer-
ring knighthood on Henry of Monmouth. (Archsologia, xx. 32, pi. ii. )
NOTES ON THE WILL.
207
sents a perplexing discrepancy from the letter of the will,
which Sir Harris Nicolas, Mr. Planche, and other writers have
noticed. The escntcheons of arms are actually surmounted by
labels inscribed houmout ; whilst those with ostrich feathers
have the motto ich diene, not mentioned in the Prince's
KNAMELLED ESCUTCHEON AFFIXED TO THE ALTAR TOMB IN CANTERBURY
CATHEDRAL UPON WHICH THE EFFIGY OF EDWARD THE BLACK PRINCE
IS PLACED.
injunctions. It must, however, be considered that the text
of his will has not been obtained from the original in-
strument (no longer, probably, in existence), but from a
transcript in Archbishop Sudbury's Register ; and the suppo-
sition seems probable that the copier may have inadver-
tently omitted the words ich diene after noz armez, and the
208
NOTES ON THE WILL.
sentence as it now stands appears incomplete. Still, even
if this conjecture be admitted, the mottoes over the al-
ternate escutcheons are transposed, as compared with the
Prince's directions
The origin and import of these mottoes have been largely
discussed ; it may suffice to refer to the arguments ad-
ENAMELLED ESCUTCHEON AFFIXED TO THE ALTAR TOMB IN CANTERBURY
CATHEDRAL UPON WHICH THE EFFIGY OF EDWARD THE BLACK PRINCE
IS PLACED.
vanced by the late Sir Harris Nicolas and by Mr, Planche
(Archfeologia, xxxi. 357, 372, and xxxii. 69).^ The most
remarkable fact connected with this subject is that the
Prince actually used these mottoes as a sign-manual ;
1 See also Mr. Planclie's History of British Costume, p. 178.
NOTES ON THE WILL. 209
thus : De ^wr Itomout Ich dene, the mottues being written
one over the otlier, and enclosed within a Une traced around
them. This interesting signature was tirst noticed in a com-
munication to the Spalding Society, some years since, and
a fac-simile engraved in Mr. Nichols's " Bibliotheca Topogra-
phica." Another document thus signed, and preserved in
the Tower, w'as commiuiicated by ^Jr. Hardy to the late Sir
Harris Nicolas. It has been published in his " Memoir on
the Badges and Mottoes of the Prince of Wales," before
cited. ^ I am indebted to the obliging courtesy of the Vis-
count Mahon, President of the Society of Antiquaries, whose
kindness enables me to place before the reader of these notes
^Ov«^w